#thank you for sending this?? it was very fun c:
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Note
Hi! Your Hollow Knight AU has really cheered me up so I wanted to do a little drawing for it! This got me to get my art tablet out after months of not feeling like it so thank you for the inspiration! I hope the colors look good on any monitor that's not mine sdfsdf
Bugs In the Jingshi wyd?
I am so genuinely awestruck at how well you translated this AU to the hollow knight style! Also obsessed with the height difference.
#mdzs au#hollow knight#lan wangji#wei wuxian#fanart#Thank you so much for this B'*)#This is *so* incredible!! I feel incredibly honoured to have inspired something so beautiful!#I showed this asap to my friend who's been letting me observe their hollow knight playthrough and oh man oh man. The hype was real.#The colours have the Hollow Knight gloomy swag and the way that this looks like it could be an area in the game is soooooo good.#Thinking about the bug sounds they would make.....Peace and love on earth could be achieved with lwj hollowspeak....#I hope you keep finding fun things to draw!! Your art has continuously brought a lot of joy!#I very much understand the pain and struggle of having a craft you just...cant seem to get your heart back into.#Sending you so much love and energy and artistic inspiration!!!!#(lwj has the wrong eye shape b/c I was too focused on getting the silly angle for dramatic perspective. whoops)#I have honestly loved doing this AU and I'm fiercely happy that its been resonating with people (as it makes me want to do more hehe)
549 notes
·
View notes
Note
For te character ask: gimme Starscream (TFP), Dead End (cyberverse) and Drift (mtmte)
:3đ
Ajfldksjlf you somehow managed to pick three of the five characters that Iâve been really rotating through my brain this past week so thank youuuu I had a ton of fun with these :3 enjoy the headcanons!!!Â
Starscream (TFP)
Headcanon A:Â realistic
When Starscream gets over himself and stops fussing over how to make himself look as good as possible, heâs actually a pretty good leader whoâs skilled at managing all the small details to accomplish his bigger goals. Starscream himself doesnât know this though, because even when other people genuinely think heâs doing a great job, they keep it to themselves for fear of inflating Starscreamâs ego. (Itâs Soundwave. Heâs people.)
Headcanon B: while it may not be realistic it is hilarious
Starscreamâs opinion on humans goes up from âoccasionally amusing but overall useless life formsâ to âextremely grudging fear respectâ after that time Miko stole the apex armor from him and beat him up. Obviously Starscream doesnât reveal this shift to anyone, but after some observing Raf figures him out. He chooses not to tell Starscream that Miko is an outlier and most other humans wouldnât be able to kick his ass, because a) itâs an advantage he can maybe use in the future and b) he starts laughing to himself whenever he thinks about it.
Headcanon C: heart-crushing and awful, but fun to inflict on friends
Starscream is desperately touch-starved, and craves physical intimacy and gentle touches. Alas, after everyone heâs lost and everyone whoâs hurt him throughout the war, he never allows himself to be that vulnerable with anyone ever again. He does his best to keep everyone, no matter which side heâs currently playing, a careful armâs length distance away.
Headcanon D: unrealistic, but I will disregard canon about it because I reject canon reality and substitute my own.
Since itâs canon that Starscream likes to browse the internet, my possible-but-still-probably-unrealistic headcanon is that Starscream is pretty fluent in internet memes and slang. He expects Soundwave to know a lot too, since Soundwave monitors everything, but Soundwave tends to filter out anything he deems pointless and that includes anything to do with human internet culture. The first time Starscream brings up a meme in reaction to one of Soundwaveâs audio clips, he gets a very confused blank stare in response.
Dead End (Cyberverse)
Headcanon A:Â realistic
Dead End is bad at forming close friendships, mostly because his unending pessimism tends to eventually put people off, but heâs actually pretty good at initiating small talk and making superficial acquaintances. Thatâs why heâs on speaking terms with most of Decepticon high command and makes a feeble effort to save them from the Loop. (Feeble because, well, being on speaking terms with them doesnât mean he actually likes all of them. Case in point: Soundwave.)
Headcanon B: while it may not be realistic it is hilarious
As they slowly get to know each better by virtue of forced proximity, Dead End and Hot Rod both come to realize they actually have a lot in common: theyâre both the âshoot first, ask questions laterâ type of bot, theyâve both got quick tempers, they both like to keep their finish as pristine as possible, and (although Hot Rod tries to pretend this one isnât true) theyâre both prone to negative introspection when things arenât going their way. Rather than bringing them closer together, this realization horrifies them both and they silently and mutually avoid bringing it up, ever.
Headcanon C: heart-crushing and awful, but fun to inflict on friends
I touched on this in my deadceptor fic, but reiterating it here with more heart-crushing-ness: Dead End doesnât regret choosing to abandon everyone and leave the universe with Megatron. Itâs not that he doesnât care about everyone else, and if they were all hurt or killed by the Quintessons he wouldâve been sorry that they died, but thatâs not enough for him to feel bad about his choices. Heâs not sorry about prioritizing himself and his own goals first.
Headcanon D: unrealistic, but I will disregard canon about it because I reject canon reality and substitute my own.
Shortly after joining the Decepticons, Dead End developed a crush on Megatron. It eventually faded into strong admiration and loyalty, but Dead End still thinks the whole situation was extremely embarrassing and would vehemently deny it to anyone who asks.
Drift (Mtmte)
Headcanon A:Â realistic
Driftâs ongoing âsee who gets more kills in fightsâ contest with Rodimus was actually his initial idea, not Rodimusâ. He came up with it so he has something to focus on while fighting (keeping track of his increasing number of kills) and he doesnât lose himself in a mindless rage the way he used to do as Deadlock. He only meant it as a one-time thing, but competing with Rodimus turned out to be so fun, and Rodimusâ sulking face when he lost was so funny, that Drift brought it up again the next time.
Headcanon B: while it may not be realistic it is hilarious
If a normal bot was fully aware that Ultra Magnus hated them, theyâd do their best to stay out of Magnusâ way and avoid doing anything to piss him off. Drift, who is far from a normal bot and more mischievous than most people think, conspires with Rodimus to play really stupid pranks on Magnus like adjusting the lighting to be a few degrees brighter than regulation and using incorrect punctuation in his submitted reports. Drift thinks of it as âif Magnus thinks Iâm the same kind of idiot as Rodimus, then heâll stop seeing me as a dangerous Decepticon.â Rodimus just thinks the whole thing is hilarious and is glad that he isnât the only one getting yelled at.
Headcanon C: heart-crushing and awful, but fun to inflict on friends
Drift treasures every close connection heâs formed in the past and presentâall the people who saw something good and worth saving in him. But after he defects from the Decepticons, he starts chasing that kind of close connection with a secondary reason: yes, he still desires that intimacy, but heâs also looking for people to devote his life to. Drift sees offering his unquestioning loyalty as a way to atone, and if he ends up dying for someone, then, well, itâs what he deserves after everything he did as Deadlock.
Headcanon D: unrealistic, but I will disregard canon about it because I reject canon reality and substitute my own.
A leftover habit from his days as Deadlock means Drift naturally has a very exaggerated fighting style. Think dramatic twirls and poses, sword thrusts that are a little flashier than strictly necessary, brutal punches that hit where he knows will cause the most energon to spray out, terrifying smiles, etc. As Deadlock, it strengthened his reputation as a fearsome berserker and he revelled in it. As Drift, itâs mortifying as all slag. It takes him conscious effort to not fight like that, and he still sometimes slips into the habit by accident. Rodimus tells him not to worry about it because he thinks itâs cool. Many, many years later, Ratchet admits itâs kind of hot.
#transformers#starscream#dead end#drift#tfp#cyberverse#mtmte#noodleblade#multifandom soulmate#realized later that starscream and drift's headcanon c ended up being kinda similar buuuut i don't want to change them#so make of that what you will ^^#anyway ily thanks again for sending these it was Very fun to think about in my spare time <333#ask meme
30 notes
·
View notes
Text
@ofsavior asked: One hand extends forward to cradle Jasonâs cheek. To think everyone in her life is so important to Koriandâr. Yet, heâs somehow something of an overlooked constant. âYou know I see you for who and what you are.â
"Your hand's warm." Was that because she had enough radioactive energy stored up in one finger to rip a hole through a dozen aircraft carriers lined up end-to-end? Well, couldn't hurt. The alternative was, what? Warm fuzzies? Genuine affection? Some argument from the universe that screwing up in a thousand different ways with a thousand different people and somehow never picking up on the right lesson to learn did not, in fact, mean that he was just too damn bad at this to try? Well, from everything Jason knew, he wouldn't put it past a pig to fly, but that didn't mean he'd seen one.
The impulse, then, was to make a joke out of it. Some piece of deflection, some self-deprecating, or obnoxiously self-aggrandizing, commentary on what she might see, depending on which way the mental coin flip landed this time. There was enough to go off of, either way, although sitting next to someone as awe-inspiring (in, truly, every sense of the word) as Kory gave self-deprecating a certain edge. He could think of something. "Yeah? What's that? Third hottest Outlaw, or maybe second on a good day?" Or "guy who keeps trying to make 'bamboozled' happen?" Maybe, if he was feeling especially spicy, "consensus #1 overall pick for combined mommy + daddy issues in Gotham City, which, when you think about it, is definitely an achievement as long as Batman's still alive?"
There were more easy targets than difficult ones, when it came to Jason and his life. It almost felt wrong to receive anything resembling warmth from Kory, from someone he held in pure, unreserved esteem. A joke of cosmic proportions, written up in some 6/10 student film satire - here's some amazing woman, who can do anything she puts her mind to, and her role in this scene is to prop up some Sufficiently Mediocre Man and his feelings. The impulse was to pull away and make those jokes, to deflect, to not let her like him.
Instead, Jason raised his own hand, gently curling his fingers over hers. "I don't know, really, what I did to deserve having someone like you in my life, Kory." She was too discerning for his bad comedy special, and too disarming for any facade, which didn't leave him with many options. Naked honesty? That wasn't his strong suit, but he'd make do. "But, I'm glad you're here. I'm always glad you're here." He turned to look at her, resisting the urge to shirk away from her stunningly brilliant green gaze. "I see you too. For, a lot of reasons." Too many to list.
3 notes
·
View notes
Text
LaDs Men and the nicknames they love
Pairings include: Xavier x Reader | Rafayel x Reader | Zayne x Reader | Sylus x Reader | Caleb x Reader
Warning, this post contains: very light smut, nothing super detailed but definitely suggestive! Also fluff! Read at your own risk!
A/N: all moving banners in the post are by @cafekitsune + please be kind, as these are just my opinion / nicknames I have for them in game and in writings Iâve done. I had fun with this one! I def have more to write so youâll be seeing more of me soon, thank you for the support!
Xavier
đ°Baby
Xavier isnât sure what it is about the nickname. Itâs so popular, so widely used, almost cliche. Some couples even find it cringy, and for him? Itâs pretty damn modern. Maybe thatâs why he loves it so much. Something about the way you sound when you call him baby, the tone of your voice, the caress of your fingers. That soft and sleepy âgood morning, baby.â Sends his heart into a frenzy. It sparks kiss, then two, then three, and suddenly youâre making out and heâs shoving down his sweats to get inside of you.
âKeep calling me that, please. Need you to keep calling me your baby⊠I love it so much⊠fuck!â
đ°Xavi
Simple, sweet, playful. The first time you uttered the shortened version of his name, blood rushed to Xavierâs face. It wasnât expect it, and for some reason it gave him cuteness aggression. He felt the need to tug you close, suffocate you with his hugs and kisses and maybe slip a nibble or two in there. However, the nickname could be used as a weapon against him. Youâve become prone to using it when heâs mad or jealous. âCâmon, Xavi! He was just giving me bread.â Yeah sure, just bread. Thatâs the first step, next is getting into your bed. Still, there is nothing he loves more than that nickname.
âXavi, heâs just giving me bread!â His tone is higher, mocking you as he pounds you into the mattress. Xavi being the only name you can utter as he fucks you utterly senseless.
đ°Bunny
A classic. He just⊠heâs so⊠you know? How can you not? Heâs your little bunny boy, your sweet, totally innocent bunny boy. You usually call him bunny through text, sending him selfies with the bunny plushie he won you in the claw machine (seems he had a new enemy). Bunny has also become a dual nickname, heâll call you bunny right back whenever youâre excited or⊠riled up. It just suits him, suits you, makes perfect sense. âwe also tend to fuck like bunnies.â A prompt slap to his bare shoulder sent him into a giggling fit.
âTellâhaâtell me Iâm wrong, my lil bunnyâŠâ
Rafayel
đ Bub or Bubba
This nickname just came so naturally once you and Rafayel had officially began dating. It just slipped out one day and Rafayel didnât point it out â simply because he didnât think you noticed. Then, it happened again, and again, and again. The variation between bub and bubba and sometimes both came out within the span of a minute. Eventually he teased you about it, but you claimed you couldnât help yourself because he was just too cute. âIf you can call me cutie, I can call you bubba.â Rafayel wasnât complaining though.
âMy sweet girl.â A gentle coo in your ear as he hugged you tighter from behind, lips ghosting the shell of your ear as his hips grind forward. âLet your bubba take care of you.â
đ Guppy
Rafayel had a huge love hate relationship with this chosen nickname. Initially he had gotten a little defensive, pouting his lips and puffing his cheeks and accidentally reinforcing your love for the nickname in the process. Now? He actually had to admit he thought it was pretty cute. Especially when youâd waltz into his studio, arms wrapping around his neck as you peck his cheek. âIs this your latest piece, guppy? It looks beautiful already!â The nickname was sweet, so sweet it made his cheeks warm every time you used it.
âYou like this, huh guppy?â He was going to lose it, tugging against the silk restraints with a frustrated whine. âC-courseâŠâ but you fixed him in place with a cool stare âI mean⊠yes!â
đ Raffie
It came out while play fighting one night and Rafayel made you repeat it three times before bursting into a fit of giggles. Heâd never heard anyone make his name cute before, so it was only right that his cutie was the one to do it. Though, there was also the argument that he had never let anyone get as close to him as you were. So, in a sense, the shortened and cute-ified version of his name was yours for the taking. It always had been, he was certain of it. âRaffie, what are we gonna do today? Wanna walk on the beach?â Or âRaffie, youâre wiggling too much Iâm trying to sleepâ no matter the context, Rafayel loved hearing the little nickname from you.
âR-Raffie! Feels so⊠good please donât stop!â Your hips jerk against his lips, a fist full of his hair in your fingers: still, the nickname slipped past your lips. You werenât far gone yet.â
Zayne
âïž My Love
Just like all of your nicknames for him, none of them really shone through until after the surgeon and you made things official. So, it should be no surprise that Zayneâs face turned a shade of crimson the first time you said it. âMy love, where did you put my reusable cup? I need it for training tomorrow.â Poor thing, he short circuited for a good two minutes before finally telling you where the cup had been moved to. Once he was used to it? Zayne started using the nickname back at you. âMy loveâ became a common phrase.
âMy love, Iâve missed youââ a kiss ââso damnââ another kiss âmuchâŠ!â You were all over each other, two weeks apart due to surgeries and missions really caught up to you both.
âïž Sweetheart
You picked it up from the man himself. Every time Zayne called you sweetheart, you found yourself calling it back. Turns out you were both creatures of habit. Whatever one did, eventually the other would pick up. âGoodnight, sweetheart. Donât stay too late, those files can always wait for the next shift.â Your voice filled this ear, a gentle sigh leaving Zayneâs lips as tired eyes scanned over his computer screen. âDonât worry, Iâll be mindful of the time. I just have to do one more round and Iâll be on my way home. Donât wait up for me.â The sweet nickname was the mood boost Zayne needed to finish his shift.
âHi, sweetheart.â It was groggy, a kiss on your brow was all you needed to know your lover was home. âHi, my love.â You shivered at the cool sensation of his hands slipping under the covers, roaming your skin in search of some much needed warmth.
âïž Zaynie
A nickname that you had used on him since childhood, and yet it never failed to make his heart beat just a little faster. As cute as it was, it carried a level of intimacy and domestic nature that made Zayne smile. âZaynie! Itâs your day off, what do you want to do?â And â astra help him â he could think of serval things he wanted to do that didnât so much as involve leaving his bed. You were just too cute for his heart to handle, so sweet and beautiful andâ well it is his day off after all.
âHow about this, my love⊠does this work?â Your mind is reeling, a quite plea if âzaynieâŠâ leaving your lips out of habit.
Sylus
đ·Handsome
Sylus could have fainted the first time you called him handsome. You had done it so nonchalantly, so genuinely too, for the first time the leader of Onychinus didnât know what to do with himself. You noticed, of course, the little hitch in his breath and the widening of his eyes. And you didnât say a word, just tucked it in the back of your mind for later. Eventually he got used to you calling him handsome, but it didnât stop the flutter in his chest when you did. âMorning, handsome. Are we going to go for a walk?â Sure, a walk works, but he can think of way better things to do to⊠warm up.
âS-so handsome, my ha-handsome boyââ Sylus groaned, hips swiveling against yours. âStill praising me? What a good girlâŠâ
đ·My Beloved
He thinks you got the nickname from him, considering heâs called you it a handful of times himself. So, it becomes a shared nickname for eachother, and Sylus finds himself grinning like a fool whenever he hears you calling him. âAre you ready to go, my beloved?â Your hand is extended towards him, youâre both dressed to the nines, and he swears the butterflies in his chest are about to break through his damn rib cage. âCourse I am, beautiful.â With a shaky little breath, his fingers intertwined with your own. Now? It was time to get the job done⊠hopefully he could focus for that longâ
âCouldnât help yourself, beloved?â This wasnât exactly your first time getting pressed up against a wall by your lover while on a mission. And it certainly wouldnât be your last⊠âyou know Iâm insatiable.â
đ·Sy
It was so effortless falling from your lips that Sylus barely noticed it the first few times you had used it. It wasn't until the twins had begun to chuckle that Sylus picked up on the key detail his brain had been glossing over. "So domestic, boss!" to which the two of them were banished from the kitchen. All you could do was laugh, a dopey grin on your face as your lover approached you with mock disdain. "Using a nickname in front of those two... what a dangerous game you're playing, kitten." You could only continue your giggling, even as he picked you up and placed you on the marble countertop. "Naughty naughty..."
"S-sy! Sylus! Shit- slow down!" But he could feel you thrusting your hips backwards to meet his erratic thrusts. "You're so indecisive -ha- kitten."
Caleb
đ Honey
Caleb had been cheeky back when you pretended to be his girlfriend, using the pet name as frequently as he could to really sell the act. But, somewhere along the way after things became official, you had begun to use the term genuinely. "Hi honey." Here and "honey, where did you put the laundry detergent?" there and suddenly he was doing it too. It made him feel warm and fuzzy every time you uttered the phrase, and he didnât dare tease you about it in fear that youâd stop using it all together. He could be your honey any time.
âYou like that, honey? Like when I do this?â His lips are all over your chest, nipping and sucking and licking. âBet you do, youâre as sweet as honey⊠how about I give you some of my honey too?â
đ Lover Boy
It had started as a joke, you even changed his name in your phone to the silly little name. Then? It was something that stuck. Heâd say something to you with hearts in his eyes and you couldnât help but chuckle, a fond smile on your face as you whisper âokay, lover boy, whatever you say.â Other times, youâd come home from work with a tired expression on your face and sleepily mutter it. And fuck did it drive Caleb wild. Sometimes heâd even use it against you, just to see your face fall apart as he pressed his body against yours, whispering the beloved nickname in your ear.
âThis is what you want your lover boy to do, huh? Fuck this pretty pussy stupid with his cock? Yeah, good girl, I bet.â
đ Kay (pronounced like a shortened version of his name)
Youâve used the nickname since childhood, a shortened version of his name that heâs become damn near trained to respond to. âCâmon, Kay, please?â Anytime youâd want him to cook for you, or do your share of chores, or when you needed help with your homework. The list goes on and on, but Kay was such a special term to him. He loved how sweet and natural it felt coming from your mouth. Even if you were whining a majority of the time you used it.
âKay! Câmon! Harder!â Youâre flushed and drooling, nails biting into his shoulders as you plead with him to fuck you just a little rougher.
#love and deepspace#l&d#love and deepspace headcanons#l&d headcanons#lads#lads smut#l&d smut#sylus#sylus smut#love and deepspace smut#zayne#zayne smut#caleb smut#caleb#rafayel smut#rafayel#xavier smut#xavier#sylus x reader#caleb x reader#zayne x reader#love and deepspace sylus#rafayel x reader#lads sylus#love and deepspace imagine#caleb headcanons#caleb x mc#xavier x reader#l&ds headcanons#l&ds smut
1K notes
·
View notes
Note
I'd never heard of studio c before but I'll try to watch out for it in the future if it's like a Mormon propaganda machine. :V my b!
oh beloved i appreciate this v much!! but i think maybe my personal reaction to seeing them out in the wild may have given the wrong impression of what studio c is??đ
đ theyre just a funny little group that makes Wholesome Sketch Comedy -- but since theyre byu based/owned/operated (which generally means vv m//ormon & vv focused on creating Good Clean Content) my family and i used to watch them a LOT. just now im out of the church and unlearning the fear of fun that is NOT Good or Clean, seeing them by surprise on my dash gave me a... much stronger internal reaction than i was expecting ??
but like. the cast in that video obv wasnt actively trying to convert anyone or advertise/advance the university or cult or anything, they were just doing shakespeare and eating spicy chicken lmao. just being theatre adults
all that being said!!! its *definitely* worthwhile to be Very Very Very Wary of anything made on/by byutv (and bonneville/deseret/etc), though
#its not even like i havent seen anything by them semi-recently; my family still sends me their stuff on occasion#(which is... def in part out of some misguided hope that itll Change My Ways somehow. which is probs where most of my reaction came from)#(its very very weird to have people hopefully stare at you while watching an ostensibly fun video as though theyre waiting for you to#jump up and shout HALLELUJAH THE LORD HAS SAVED ME BY THE POWER OF DIVINE & CUSS-FREE COMEDY AND A FAT-SUIT-WEARING SHOULDER ANGEL. WAHOO)#but as an aside: while i probably wouldnt qualify studio c as the real ''mor//mon propaganda machine'' i think it does serve an important#purpose IN the ''mor//mon propaganda machine'' -- which if you look back at that video; theres a lil logo stamped in the corner for byutv#THAT is what id qualify as the mo-prop machine. studio c is a relatively harmless branch of that#but its genuine purpose is to get people to want to join in on the Harmless Good Clean Fun#and then stick around for the other programming.#which. tbh would sound pretty tinfoil-hat-ish to say ?? if it werent for the fact that its a genuine honest-to-fuck cult#and thats a genuine honest-to-fuck recruitment tactic. so.#bee speaks#thank you for the ask!!
1 note
·
View note
Note
im not sure if youâll see thisđ but can i have reader being like maddy from euphoria, confident, bad bitch, short skirts and sheâs dating peter and they have this secret relationship cuz shes popular and hes not so they both go to a party and makes out in the restroom and comes out together and then flash is making fun of them and then she just kisses peter right in front of everyone (im so srry this is long but i hope u see this
out of sight, on his mind ââĄâ§âË
ask box  |  taglist  |  blurb masterlist  |  main masterlist
w/c: ?
warnings: making out, suggestiveness, drinking, like one swear
a/n: oh i looooved this idea thank you very much for your service babes :D also don't forget to join my new taglist y'all i only got a couple of you so far & happy reading!
you down a shooter, gagging at the bitter taste of the alcohol. you giggle and stick the tiny bottle in your bra. you're dancing with a group of your friends. one of them takes your hand, the two of you moving to the beat of the music. peter watches you from across the room with the hint of a smile.
he wouldn't typically spend his friday night in the corner of a packed houseparty nursing a cup of jungle juice, but ned insisted they go. his best friend is determined they both up their social statuses this year. they're not too popular at midtown, with the exception of the academic decathlon team.
if people only knew peter was dating one of the most popular girls in school; you.
it was peter's idea to keep your relationship secret. you'd wanted to show him off, but he's too shy. you're always the center of attention, and peter parker doesn't do well with attention. he'd much rather admire you with everyone else in public and be yours in private.
"come on, peter! it's a party! shouldn't we be, like, dancing or something?"
"i don't know, ned. just... drink your juice."
ned takes a generous swig of his drink and cringes. peter chuckles, sipping from his cup.
"what's in jungle juice anyway?"
"um, everything i think. you might blackout if you have too much."
"dude, that's the goal."
you catch peter's eye again. you're holding your friend's arm that's wrapped around your shoulders, hips swaying. you shout along to the music with the rest of the girls in your group. you look so carefree, and so damn good.
the pink, strapless dress you're wearing is hugging your body in all the right places. your hair is styled to perfection, tiny gems dotted along your eyelids. your look is complete with a pair of knee high boots. peter loves your style. there's no way to describe it other than that it's you, who peter adores an insane amount. he wishes he could be as bold as you are.
peter's phone vibrates in his pocket; it's a text from you.
are u watching me?
before he even answers, you send another.
come to the bathroom
peter briefly locks eyes with you. you give him a mischievous smile before slipping away, making some excuse to your friends. he bites his lip to suppress his own grin.
"hey, ned? how about i go get us some refills?"
"bet! iâm gonna dance."
ned hands peter his cup and claps him on the shoulder, disappearing into the crowd. instead of refilling their drinks, peter makes his way to the bathroom. there's a few people waiting in line. knowing you, you've already claimed it from them. he knocks at the door. a hand reaches out and grabs at peter's flannel, pulling him inside.
"hi, baby."
your glossy lips capture peter's in a kiss. he instantly leans into it, but you pull back much to his dismay. his big brown eyes go even bigger.
"woah... hi."
you laugh softly.
"miss me?"
"seems like you missed me too."
"maybe."
you run a hand through peter's hair. his hands settle on your hips.
"sorry for watching you, couldn't help it. you look so pretty tonight."
"i always look pretty."
your tone is playful, but peter knows you mean it, and he couldn't agree more.
"whatcha been up to? you having fun?"
your manicured nails scratch lightly at peter's scalp. he practically purrs at the feeling.
"mm, just been hanging with ned. i don't really know anybody else."
"you know me."
"but you're with your friends."
"so?"
"so... you know iâm shy, princess."
you giggle.
"it's just 'cause you're not drunk enough, baby."
"oh yeah?"
peter's thumbs run up and down your sides, face only inches from yours. you retrieve the shooter from your bra. there's still at least half a shot left.
"open."
peter does as you say and opens his mouth. you take his chin between your fingers and tilt his head back, pouring the rest of the strong, sweet liquid down his throat. he swallows. you toss the bottle aside. peter gives you a look, one that says kiss me. you shake your head, smirking.
you want him to kiss you.
peter's lips smash into yours. his eagerness makes you giggle into the kiss. you grip the collar of his shirt in both hands, lips moving slowly against each other's. peter backs you against the door.
"did i already tell you how pretty you look?"
"mhm, but not enough."
"you're right. you're so pretty."
peter kisses down your neck, breathing in the scent of your perfume. you guide his lips back up to yours.
"you are too, y'know."
you peck peter's lips softly, letting your lips linger over his after, eyes searching his. they twinkle. you mesmerize him, truly mesmerize him. you kiss an awe-struck peter properly this time. he holds your waist, head tilted to deepen the kiss.
your make out session is rudely interrupted by someone knocking on the door.
"yeah, one second!" you answer. "let's get out of here."
peter groans and buries his face in your neck.
"but i don't want to. wanna keep kissing you."
"not here, baby."
"why not?"
he leaves more kisses on your neck. you coax peter away, laughing, his arms still wrapped tight around you.
"the line. wanna find somewhere else?"
peter perks up at that.
"okay, let's go."
you lead peter out of the bathroom. he follows, hand in yours. even though no one seems to pay any mind to the fact that you were in the bathroom together, peter can't help but blush. he doesn't make it out unscathed, though; none other than flash thompson notices him.
"penis parker, is that you?"
you stop walking, eyeing flash over your shoulder. peter lets out an exasperated sigh.
"what's up, flash?"
"you are."
peter looks down to see an obvious bulge in his jeans. his cheeks burn hotter, hand leaving yours to readjust himself. a few people turn around to look.
"y/n's a big step up from your imaginary girlfriend. where'd you say she was from again, canada?"
you narrow your eyes at flash, a hand wrapping around peter's bicep.
"do you know him?"
"yeah, we're... friends. sort of. we do academic decathlon together."
your gaze shifts to peter.
"friends?"
"oh yeah, we go way back. any friend of parker's is a friend of mine."
flash smirks at you. you look him up and down, face scrunched in disgust.
"ew."
more people are starting to watch the exchange. you glare at flash, who holds your gaze knowingly. peter can tell you're about to go into protective girlfriend mode. he squeezes your hand that's on his arm.
"anyways, just wanted to congratulate you on your first baddie," flash tells him. "try not to fumble."
before peter can process what's happening, your lips are on his, hands cupping his cheeks to keep him in place. maybe it's just because he's tipsy, but peter actually finds himself having the courage to kiss you back in front of everyone. you smile at this. he holds you by your waist, letting himself enjoy the kiss for a while longer.
peter's lips are puffy and covered in your gloss when you two pull apart. he draws you in closer to himself, giving you one more short kiss, then another. the two of you earn whistles and chatter from everyone watching. you giggle, thumbs caressing peter's cheeks and gaze meeting his.
there's something in his eyes that you haven't seen before; confidence. he might be shy, but not when it comes to you. not anymore.
you look over at flash smugly, his mouth dropped open.
"he won't."
tags (join my new taglist!)
@spidermans-gf @sacharinee
#peter parker fluff#peter parker smut#peter parker x reader#peter parker x you#peter parker x y/n#peter parker fanfiction#peter parker fic#peter parker writing#tom holland smut#tom holland fluff#tom holland x reader#tom holland x you#tom holland x y/n#tom holland fic#tom holland fanfiction
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
The Sweetest Thing
All your life youâve been your sistersâ punching bag. Never good enough. Never fully accepted. When your mother makes one of them choose you as her maid of honor you reluctantly agree. Semi-vacationing in Tuscany with your âbelovedâ family, you meet two handsome strangers one night and let them do whatever they want with you. Too bad you didnât ask for their names first.
Pairing: Heeseung x F!Reader x SunghoonÂ
Genre: Strangers to ???, Porn with Plot
Warnings: CHEATING!!! reader is hooking up with her sistersâ fiancĂ©s, sisters are horrible and suck, mentions of past verbal abuse, reader is somewhat a pervert (she defo is), heeseung & sunghoon definitely are perverts, heeseung & sunghoon are mean, they have nothing good to say about their fiancĂ©s, alcohol consumption, adult content MDNI! smut warnings under the cut
Word Count: 9.2kÂ
a/n: and here it is!! my little box of filth. i wanna give a shoutout to @c-oupsie for hyping this up and telling me to keep going, ilysm!! and also @chwepen for beta-reading!! sending you smooches. <3 now everyone, please enjoy this sausage fest.
Taglist:Â @skzenhalove, @haelahoops, @deobitifull, @shiningnono, @jakeswifez, @slut4hee, @gyuhanniescarat, @branchrkive, @doublebunv, @capri-cuntz, @jaehyuniewifeu, @whateverhoon, @c-oupsie
Smut Warnings: threesome, dom!heeseung, dom!sunghoon, sub!reader, lowkey public sex, p in v sex, throat fucking, unprotected sex (be smarter than this pls!!!), degradation (usage of the words: whore, slut, filthy, stupid (only indirectly?)), praise, tit job, mc is described to have big tits, sunghoon can carry mc, manhandling, cum eating, cum play, shower sex, consensual sex taping, pls tell me if i missed any!!
Pastel colors are slowly but surely becoming your greatest enemy. You canât count how many different patterns and matches you have seen on this day alone - and the preparations for this wedding have been going on for months.Â
In all honesty, you didnât even want to be here. As pretty as Tuscany is - this is the last place you want to be at right now. You would rather sit at home and play a game, would rather sleep in and not have your mother be all over you, pressuring you to do better in a job you never wanted in the first place.Â
It is your sistersâ wedding. Yes, sistersâ. They are both getting married at the same time, same place. Just the grooms are two different men (even though you wouldnât put it past them to share a man for convenience). Men, you havenât even met yet. Men, that your mother and sisters kept on swooning over. Look, it is no surprise your sisters got lucky in that department; They are extremely conventionally attractive and they love doing fun things like going out and spending money on things they really didnât need.Â
You grew up with them being six and seven years older than you, making them already inseparable when your mum decided to push another one out. Getting along with them sure as hell wasnât an easy task, in fact it still isn't. Itâs pretty clear you only got the job as Lindaâs maid of honor because your mother threatened her to do so. There was probably a very heated rock, paper, scissors round going on between your sister dearests to decide who got to have you.Â
And now you are here. In warm, beautiful Italy with yet another color scheme to look over and authorize. You surely didnât sign up to suddenly become the wedding planner as well.Â
âYeah, thatâs perfect, thanks,â you say to one of the florists who are just now setting up the arrangements for the rehearsal dinner happening tonight.Â
Itâs hot, so hot that you have to take shelter every ten minutes because of the fear of burning up. You donât usually like to spend this much time outside - let alone in the scorching hot sun, so this is rather the change for you.Â
When the florists leave to get another load of flowers, you decide to take this as the next round of shade and air conditioning inside the resort your sisters have chosen for their special day.Â
Itâs insanely beautiful. High ceilings, incredible murals on the wall, a big round table in the center of the entrance hall with a crystal vase on top, filled with flowers that would make the florist outside turn green in envy.Â
The air inside immediately cools you down and you take the moment to sit down in one of the arm chairs in the lobby to calm yourself. Only a week. Thatâs all you need to survive. A week with your sisters and their fiancĂ©s, soon to be husbands and your and their families. Guests would arrive the night before the wedding and as soon as the reception was over - you could finally leave and hopefully not see your sisters for another year or so.Â
âAh, there you are.â You close your eyes for a second.Â
âShouldnât you be outside?â Linda and Liza are standing in the lobby in their designer sun dresses, very obviously judging you for not being where they want you to be.Â
âI just came in to escape the heat for a second, thatâs all.â You explain as you open your eyes again. The two certainly donât look happy. In fact, they roll their eyes and flick their perfect hair over their shoulders.
âOkay, well, time is up. If this wedding doesnât go according to plan, itâs on you.â
âYou donât want us telling mum you donât care about your big sisters, do you? Sheâd be so disappointed knowing you arenât doing your job right.âÂ
Your fists almost immediately ball into fists. How many times have they been like this over the three days youâve already been here? You honestly lost count. One week. Just one week.
âI was just about to go back outside, donât worry.âÂ
Anger well hidden away, you stand up and present them with a fake smile, moving to go back outside.Â
âOh and, Y/N?â Lindaâs voice feels like a ray of ice hitting you, âtry to look a little bit more presentable when talking to our staff. We donât want them to think we canât actually afford being here.âÂ
Your sisters giggle happily all while you bite your tongue once more. One week. Stay calm. One. Week.Â
Something about the Italian sky seems different. Maybe itâs because youâre not close to a big city, but the stars shine brighter than youâve ever seen them. It feels like a movie; the stars and moon so visible with no cloud in sight, the small street of Arezzo youâre currently sitting in - a small restaurant with a small menu but a nice older man that speaks decent English. A glass of wine standing on the small table beside you and the first bit of peace youâve felt in days.Â
Itâs when you take your next sip of wine you see them.Â
Two men straight out of a magazine walking towards one of the free tables next to yours and sitting down. There is nothing you can do but stare. Both of them have dark hair, one of them a bit shorter than the other. They are dressed elegantly, designer shoes and pants, blazers hanging over their chairs. Even if you wanted to - you could not possibly say which one was more attractive.Â
What a nice way to end a horrible day, you think. Smiling, you finish your glass and immediately order the next, not entirely used to drinking so much, but not caring since you are miles away from home and no one here knows you anyway. The waiter nods and then proceeds to go over to the newcomers. The one with the slightly lighter hair and the mole on his nose orders in perfect Italian, with just enough of an accent for you to know they arenât from here. Your choice of table appears to be perfect for watching them, listening to them converse in a language you understand.Â
And it all stays innocent like this - they talk about their flight and about friends - until suddenly the conversation sways.
âI honestly- fuck, I canât believe weâre actually doing this, you know?â The one with shorter hair says and his friend sighs, taking his wine glass and finishing it in one go. Impressive. There was at least half left in yours.Â
âI donât know what to tell you. We committed and now weâre fucked.â
âJust that we arenât getting actually fucked.â
They look at each other before they laugh, shaking their heads. Meanwhile, your ears perk up.Â
âFuck, I really donât know the last time she let me hit it, Hoon. I think Iâm going crazy.â
âYeah, same here. Like, yeah, we fucked once the day before her flight. But literally only missionary and she didnât suck me off.â
âAgain? Dude, is she ever even putting her mouth on it?âÂ
âNope. Ever since we got engaged sheâs like this fucking prude. Is yours like that too?â
âYeah. I got her flowers and her favorite chocolates and she still wouldnât even jack me off, like fuck, if itâs gonna be like this forever I can just go cut my dick off.â
Jesus. These two seem to be in very happy relationships. Makes you almost feel better to not be in one. Even if your mother would beg to differ. Sheâs been desperate for you to find a match for ages. For whatever reason, really, considering her two golden girls were about to get married to rich and handsome heirs.Â
âJust one good blowjob, man, thatâs all I want, really. I miss getting some good fucking head.â
The way short hair looks at mole - with so much understanding and pity, you canât help but chuckle. Chuckle loud enough for them to take notice.Â
Their gazes burn on your face before you even see them. But when you do your smile dies and instead makes room for horror. They heard you laugh at them. Even worse, they know youâve been listening. Shit.Â
Thankfully, you are three glasses of delicious white wine in and the fourth one is almost empty. Which means you arenât the sweet little wallflower youâd usually be. Scary, how alcohol can change people.
âOh, I am sorry. I shouldnât have eavesdropped.â You apologize, placing your hand over your heart.Â
âAgreed.â Short hair says, his eyebrow raised. Now, with both of their eyes on you, it seems like they are even more attractive. Perfect faces with pretty eyes and soft looking hair. Handsome men in unhappy relationships that fail to give them what they need. Itâs almost comical how the switch in your head turns over, how the persona you normally never let anyone see until youâre in a secluded space comes out and gives you the courage to speak your next words.
âI just couldnât believe my ears,â you let your finger glide over the rim of your glass, eyes on the two men with your tongue slipping out to lick over your bottom lip, âhow anyone would be opposed to having sex with you.âÂ
Oh.
Sunghoon and Heeseungâs ears perk up just like yours did earlier. Eyes widen slightly as they understand the innuendo in your words.Â
They think about the same thing - the last time they took a girl together. Probably during senior year in college. Back then, they used to do that regularly. Having almost the identical type in women. Instead of having to let her choose, sheâd get them both.Â
But itâs been years since then. They are in committed relationships now, about to get married. And still - neither of them can deny that you fall right into their usual prey, or well, the prey theyâd chosen back in college before their parents had picked out their wives for them.Â
Itâs the way you look at them, the way your eyes say so much more than your words. It is also the way both of them feel like they are 22 again with nothing but getting their dick wet on their minds. One thing about Heeseung and Sunghoon - they always worked perfectly in a pair. Back in college and now, too. They can almost read each otherâs minds at this point, only a short exchange of looks needed to know neither of them gave a single fuck about anything right now.
âWant to sit down with us?â Sunghoon asks and points at the free chair opposite them. You smile.Â
âItâd be my pleasure.â
The very small bathroom stall is crowded with three people, but you make it work.Â
Sunghoon is holding your head in place, his cock buried so deep down your throat heâs seeing red. Youâre perfect. The sweetest thing on the outside, and a filthy little whore behind closed doors. You literally begged him to thrust down your throat without paying you any mind. You wanted, no, needed him to use your throat, to act like you were nothing but his little fuck toy. And, shit, he was more than happy to do exactly as you asked.Â
His hips are moving in rapid speed, his groans music to your ears. Drool is running down your chin and dripping onto your knees. He is not holding back, he is just doing whatever he wants with you and you are throbbing. Throbbing around Heeseungs fat cock that is fucking into you with no care in the world.Â
Heeseung is sitting on the toilet seat, his hands on your hips, cock rapidly leaving and entering your sopping hole. His head is literally spinning at how fucking good you feel. He bets youâd also sound fucking perfect if only Sunghoonâs cock wasnât in the way. He can tell by the way you are already squeaking around his best friendâs cock, how your pussy is continuing to spasm around him after you already came on his cock once before.
âTake it, fuck, fuck, fuck,â Heeseung breathes out, hips speeding up and your eyes roll back into your head, your body seemingly on fire. You canât remember the last time youâve been fucked this good by a strange or, in this case, two strangers. All you know is that youâve already cum before and that Heeseung surely will get you over the edge another time. Heâs thick and veiny and he fills you up so good there was nothing you could do but cum after only a minute of him fucking you like an animal.Â
âShit, look at you,â Sunghoon groans, one hand now wrapping around your throat, his eyes glossy as he stares down at you, still fucking down your abused throat, âyouâre a perfect little fucktoy, arenât you? Enjoy being used by two cocks, huh? Fuuuuuck, youâre gonna make me cum, fucking slut.â
Heesung feels you squeeze around his cock, feels the way you suck him in even deeper.Â
âThis filthy little thing likes when you talk to her like that, Hoonie. Squeezing my cock so fucking hard.â His head tips back and his mouth drops open as he focuses on his pleasure, already fantasizing about stuffing you with his cum. He moves his hands up, squeezing your perfect tits over your dress and you moan around Sunghoonâs cock, tears streaming down your face. Every touch, every thrust, every word is getting you closer to another high. With Heeseungâs hands on your breasts you can freely move your hips now, bouncing up and down on Heeseungâs cock, matching his thrusts perfectly.Â
There is no chance Sunghoon will last much longer. Your mouth, your throat - heâs scared he already developed an addiction to them. Maybe itâs the long time he hasnât experienced anything like this, but right now it feels like no throat has ever taken his cock so well before.
âWhere should I cum, huh? Down your throat? On your pretty face?â Sunghoon groans, his cock twitching over and over before he finally pulls out, jerking himself off so you can answer the question.Â
âCum on her tits, look at those fucking perfect tits, bro.â Heeseung decides to answer for you and Sunghoon smirks as he watches Heeseung get your tits out of your dress for which you thankfully donât need a bra. Your perfect tits bounce free now and Sunghoon nods, eyes glued to them and how they bounce now that Heeseung continues to fuck into you, your back now arched against him.Â
âFucking hell, such fat fucking tits,â Sunghoon is in a trance, mouth dropped as he jerks himself off with the help off your spit and his precum.Â
âTell him to cum on your tits, slut, come on, tell him how much you want his cum all over you,â Heeseung whispers into your ear, his cock still continuing to ram into your g-spot like it has never done anything else.Â
You moan loudly, eyes flying open and Sunghoon almost doesnât need you to say anything - your fucked out face could well be enough to make him cum.Â
âPl-please g-give me your cum, want it a-all over my tits, pl-please, need it so bad!â You cry out and Sunghoon feels his orgasm hit him, thick spurts of cum landing on your tits and neck, some even on your lips that you hungrily lick off of them, only making another spurt come out of Sunghoons cock.Â
âHoly fucking hell, shit,â he groans, falling against the stall door, his chest heaving.Â
Heeseung, meanwhile, grabs your hair and tilts your head back as he does his final thrusts, filling your pussy with his seed, white making you feel warm inside and tipping you over the edge, milking him for all he has with your own orgasm, high pitched moans escaping you as your toes curl and your hands grip the material of your dress.Â
Once heâs done fucking both of you through your orgasms, Heeseung helps you up, his cock slipping out of you. Youâre a little shaky on your legs and Sunghoon catches you before you can fall, his eyes immediately going to your tits that are covered in his cum. He licks his lips.Â
âIf we had more time Iâd take you to my room and fuck those tits until they are covered in even more layers of my cum, baby.â He mumbles, one finger scooping up some of his release and shoving his finger in your mouth, watching in awe how you eagerly suck it clean.Â
âHoly fuck, youâre perfect.â Heeseung has put his cock back into his pants, considering to get it back out just to have you lick it clean of your and his juices. He decides against it mainly because he knows there isnât much time. He and Sunghoon have to get back to the hotel, their fiancĂ©s probably awaiting their return.Â
âLetâs get you cleaned up.â Sunghoon says, but you shake your head, only putting your tits back into your dress and stepping back into your panties.
âI wanna keep it for a bit, keepsake if you will.âÂ
Both men are silent. Where the fuck have you been before they got engaged to the sisters from hell? For a second they contemplate just keeping you. Using you for when their soon to be wives were being difficult again.Â
Obviously, though, this was just a fantasy not meant for reality.Â
Perhaps itâs well deserved. Having the worst morning all week, the day right after you fucked two strangers in a restaurantâs bathroom. Two engaged strangers. Itâs not a surprise that you didnât care about the blurred lines of their⊠relationship status, considering youâve had quite a few hook-ups with married men who were out of town and needed someone to fulfill their needs while their perfect trophy wives were sitting at home waiting for them. Not the proudest thing youâve done, but whatever gets you cumming.Â
Today, your sisters seem to have it out for you especially. You blame it on the nerves, after all their perfect fiancĂ©es are about to arrive today. Everything needs to be in order, their dresses, their hair, their nails, everything.Â
Youâve become their personal stylist, nail artist and hairdresser all for nothing more than a chuckle at the way your shirt rises up and shows your stomach that they love to comment on. Itâs a win-win situation, for sure.Â
âCanât you see youâve made a mistake!â Liza screeches, pointing at her (to your eyes) perfectly drawn eyeliner. You blink at her and take a deep breath. Six days.Â
âI apologize.â Quickly, you move to fix your error, but your sister slaps your hand away and rips the pencil out of your hand.
âNo, thank you. Iâll do it myself, like everything else, you useless piece of trash.â
Six. Days.Â
Since there is no point in responding to her, you only nod and turn to Linda who is currently checking herself out in her hand mirror.Â
âAnything I can do for you?â You ask, feeling ridiculous. One could think youâre their personal assistant and not their younger sister.Â
âJust get out, Heeseung and Sunghoon are about to arrive and I donât want them seeing you first thing, imagine their shock.â
Heeseung and Sunghoon.Â
Something rings in your head. Had they ever mentioned their fiancĂ©s names before? Probably - why else would they be so familiar to you.Â
âAlright. Iâll be by the pool then.âÂ
Neither of them deems it appropriate to even slightly acknowledge you before you leave the room.
A huge sigh leaves you the second you step out of Lindaâs room and instead head for your own. Just a quick change into a bikini and down you go. A few hours in the sun, maybe a couple laps in the pool. Another bit of peace while your sisters are occupied. Sounds like the perfect morning to you.Â
Just that, when you reach your room and change into said bikini - you notice a bruise right above your hip. Your eyes widen at the sight, moving closer to the mirror to inspect it. There is no other possible reason but what happened last night.Â
âShit,â you mumble, looking around your clothes for this one light pink scarf you could easily wrap around your hips as some sort of cover. The last thing you want is for your sisters to see this and ask questions. Bad enough you had the face and figure you had - imagine their outrage if one of these was even further damaged!Â
For as long as you can remember your sisters had been your biggest haters. No matter what you did, if you changed your hair or your wardrobe, theyâd be mean to you about it. To them, you were nothing but an unwanted addition to a family they had deemed already perfect. Neither of them had ever wanted another sibling, especially not six and seven years apart from them. Suddenly, you were the center of attention, had your mother cradling you and loving you and not giving them the attention they were sure they deserved.Â
Even now, at their grown ages, about to get married, they couldnât seem to get over it.Â
From an outsider's perspective their lives were fairly more successful than yours. With great jobs in high positions, a perfect routine that included gym visits four times a week, and of course their perfect soon-to-be husbands. If it werenât so frustrating it might have been funny how they literally kept them from you - kept everything from you. Blocked you from their socials to not be associated with you, living in their own little bubble, acting like you didnât exist.Â
So, expect your surprise when Linda called and asked you to be her maid of honor. You had only accepted because you know your mother would be devastated if you didnât.Â
That all seems like an okay trade for the view of the hotel pool right by the beach, your body rubbed in sunscreen and your sunglasses on top of your nose listening to music and enjoying your moments without a sister (or mother) around to tell you what to do.Â
But your life wouldnât be yours if your peace werenât suddenly interrupted by the high pitched laugh of one of your sisters floating through the air and reaching your ears. It hadnât even been half an hour. Maybe, you think, they wonât even come over. After all, they had hidden you away from them for as long as they had been together. Perhaps they wanted to wait til the day of the wedding next week to finally introduce you.Â
Curiosity gets the best of you at last. Who are these men theyâve been gatekeeping from you, who have been nothing but your motherâs pride? Slowly, you turn into the direction of the high pitched laugh, opening your eyes behind your sunglasses.Â
And the world around you seems to shake.Â
âNo fucking way,â you breathe out, moving quickly to get up. Panic arises within you, sheer ugly panic that has your body shaking. This canât be true. This canât be happening! You move to throw your phone and headphones onto the lounge chair, your eyes darting back and forth between here and your sisterâs location, finally freeing yourself of all the things that canât get wet to jump into the pool. It seemed like the only way not to get noticed by them.Â
There are several other people in the pool and the splash of you jumping in had been drowned out by the sound of a child laughing and screaming. You stay underwater for a good while, thanking your strong lungs, and only come back up when you feel like enough time has passed for them to have left - only to be met by absolute horror.Â
They had taken seats right next to your stuff. In their bathing suits from Chanel or Prada or whatever, they looked breathtaking. Not that they would ever get into the pool. It wasnât them, though, who made your blood turn cold and the insides of your stomach threatening to say hello again - it was their fiancĂ©s.Â
Short dark hair, beautiful faces. One with a mole on his nose. The other with clear shock in his eyes.Â
The men from last night.Â
As if to remind you further, you feel the bruise on your hip suddenly starting to throb with pain. You wince and look down, noticing your make-shift cover up being gone. Wonderful.Â
Your sisters notice you now, their eyes widening when they see you in the state youâre in. Dripping with water, your hair pushed back out of your face, your body dressed in nothing but a flimsy bikini. They had always envied you for your breasts - not that they would ever admit this. But seeing them right now made them even angrier, after all Heeseung and Sunghoon were right here and could see those monstrosities!Â
And yeah, they see. See your body in that bikini that is leaving nothing to the imagination. See your tits almost falling out of the bikini top - tits that were covered in Sunghoon's cum not even 24 hours ago. They see your pretty face, your long eyelashes, droplets of water sliding down your soft skin.Â
Heeseung and Sunghoon donât realize the gravity of the situation yet, right now all they think about is how theyâve hit the jackpot because youâre in the same hotel as them. Right now, neither of them knows who you are besides the girl theyâve fucked the night before.Â
âY/N!â Liza screeches, âget out of that pool right now, you look ridiculous!âÂ
Linda gets up and grabs one of the towels next to her, throwing it into the Pool. She wants you to cover up, needs you to cover up.Â
It is then that Sunghoon and Heeseung slowly understand. Your name. They have heard that name before. Time and time again.Â
âMum made me pick my ugly little sister as my maid of honor, Hoonie, can you believe her?âÂ
âUgh, Y/N, called today. Wanted to congratulate us. Can you believe her? I bet she is so jealous, Hee, she could never get a man to stay. Sheâs just⊠tooâŠ. ew.â
Youâre their sister. Their little sister they have nothing good to say about.Â
You. The girl from last night. The girl who potentially could become the best fuck of both of their lives.Â
If they had been able to, they would have looked at each other. But they are too mesmerized by you getting out of the pool with the towel wrapped around your body, or at least around your upper half. They can still easily see your legs, your perfect thighs, the little bikini bottom that does almost nothing to cover up your ass, can see the bruise that is a clear indication of what happened last night. Itâs safe to say they are both growing harder in their trunks. Relatively bad timing.Â
ïżœïżœïżœSorry, I told you I would be at the pool,â you mumble once you get out, grabbing for your stuff.
âI donât think so, I would have remembered that!â Liza hisses, her arm sneaking around short hair. So, he must be Heeseung. Heeseung who had his cock buried inside of you mere hours ago and whose cum was most likely still inside of you.Â
âJust go back upstairs,â Linda shoos you away with her hand and you let your eyes wander to mole next to her. Sunghoon, then. Sunghoon who had been craving a mouth around his cock, Sunghoon who had his cock in your mouth, who had cum all over your exposed tits.Â
Your body heats up and you quickly turn around to leave.Â
âIt was nice to meet you!â Sunghoon calls after you and you swallow hard, not turning back to them before you leave.Â
Dinner that night is horribly awkward, to say the least. The fact youâre even allowed to participate is insane. Your parents are delighted to welcome you once you sit down, your sisters and their fiancĂ©s showing up a little while after you.Â
As it turns out, the two men had insisted youâd join them for dinner. Judging by the way they look at you, you feel like theyâd rather have you be their dinner.Â
Nothing could have prepared you for this. For the utter want you see in their faces, the utter want you feel in your bones. It makes all of dinner extremely awkward, makes you press your thighs together, shove around your food on the plate because suddenly your appetite is for something entirely different.Â
But you know you canât. The first time, so you tell yourself, was fine because you didnât know who they were. You even go as far as to blame your sisters for this, after all they had never bothered to show you what Heeseung and Sunghoon look like.Â
Now, itâs different. Now you know who they are. And as much as you despise your sisterâs, you donât think you could do this to them.Â
⊠Or at least thatâs what you tell yourself. Because the second you excuse yourself to go to the bathroom and find yourself pressed against yet another stall door, you know youâve been lying to yourself.
Itâs Heeseung, his hands on your hips, digging into the bruise on your side, having you moan in no time.
âWhat are the fucking odds, hm?â He whispers, his breath hitting your face. You open your mouth to answer, but Heeseung dips forward, his tongue sliding into your open warmth, his lips pressing down on yours. It doesnât matter what you thought of before, doesnât matter who he is. Your body is taking over, melting against the strong man, against his chest and arms.Â
Heeseung kisses you hungrily, like he has been starving for days. He had wrapped his hand around your wrist and yanked you into the one bathroom stall for men, had claimed you as his for the next few minutes.
âWe-we canât!â You cry out, pushing him away, but Heeseung only grabs you harder, turning you around, your chest hitting the door and a gasp escaping your mouth.
âIf we canât, why are you so fucking wet, baby?â His fingers are inside your cunt the next second and your eyes roll back, hips already chasing his touch. He smirks behind you, shoving your dress up with his free hand. Your backside is a sight to behold and he licks over his lips before landing a slap to your right ass cheek. You squeak.Â
âI guess bathroom stalls are just our thing now, arenât they?â
Just that this one is spacier. Youâre pressed against the door that leads right into the open restaurant. You can hear the people outside, can hear the sound of cutlery meeting plates, of glasses clinking.Â
âHee-Heeseung, yo-youâre my sisterâs fiancĂ©!â You tried again, even though your hips were already bouncing on his fingers. Heeseung chuckled lowly.
âDonât tell me now you care about the fact Iâm in a relationship. It seemed like yesterday you couldnât wait to get this taken cock shoved into your pussy.â
Heâs not wrong. You bite down on your lip and turn slightly, looking over your shoulder into his dark eyes. God, heâs beautiful.
âPlease,â you pout then, and his smirk comes back, his nimble fingers freeing his rock hard cock. You lean back against the door, your cheek pressed against the cold wood, your hands on either side of your head. Your pussy is dripping down his fingers and once he removes them, youâre already impatient to feel his huge cock fill you up.
Wiggling your hips, he lands another slap on your ass before shoving his cock into you, both of you groaning once he bottoms out.Â
Then, he doesnât show you any mercy. One of his hands sneaks around you, pressing down on your mouth to keep you quiet as he fucks you right into the door. He is panting, staring down at the way his cock slides in and out of you over and over again. His other hand fishes for his phone in his pocket, halting his thrusts for only a second to concentrate on opening the camera on the phone and hitting record.Â
âNeed to bring Hoonie something to jerk off to later,â he grins as he continues to fuck you, your moans getting numbed only by his hand. He just feels too good. Feels like no other cock youâve had before. Heâs big, wide and so god damn veiny. Every vein seems to drag along your walls, seems to push you closer to the edge. Your eyes are rolling back as your ass bounces off his hips, as his thrusts become sloppier with every second. He needs to cum soon and so do you. There isnât much time for this, no time in fact. But heâs been craving you, and so has Sunghoon. Thank all the luck in the world for him to have won that rock, paper, scissors round.Â
âGod, you take it so well, youâre such a good little whore, arenât you? All ready to go when I need to get my cock in you, fuck.âÂ
Heeseungâs words make your pussy spasm around him, his next groan deeper than before. He changes the angle slightly, fucking into you faster and harder, his orgasm getting closer with every little squeeze of your pussy.Â
âGonna cum so hard into your pussy, gonna have you sit at that table with my cum trickling into your panties.â He breathes into your ear and bites into your earlobe after, causing you to triple over the edge and cum hard around his cock - taking him right with you.Â
He curses as he fucks both of you through your orgasms, his cum filling you up, warming you from the inside.Â
Planting kisses on the back of your neck, Heeseung pulls out, watching his release drip out of you.Â
âI could get used to this,â he says and puts your panties back into its rightful place.Â
It doesnât stop there. And it also doesnât stop with Heeseung. But while Heeseung is more daring (coming to your hotel room at night, sending you pics of his dick after a shower, telling you to send him a voice note of you cumming), Sunghoon decided to take his time to make his move. You know itâs coming. You just donât know when.Â
Heeseung is like a wild animal - he canât get enough of you. He wants to have his hands on you, his dick in you and his cum all over you as many times as he can. But the week only has seven days, and you only have four more to go until this whole thing is over and they are married to your sisters.Â
Four days until you wonât be around them all the time, four days until Heeseung wonât be knocking on your door at two in the morning asking you to get on your knees. He fucks you like he owns you, like he knows your time is limited. It is, after all. He leaves marks where it is hard to spot them, kisses you in places no one has ever kissed before.Â
Yes, the nights with Heeseung are special and steamy and perfect - and yet you wonder where Sunghoon is in all of this. You see the way he looks at you, and you did get a dick pic from him the night you and Heeseung fucked at that first dinner, courtesy to him seeing the video Heeseung took of you. And that is the thing, Heeseung films you. He films you when youâre on top of him, when heâs behind you, when you got his cock down your throat, when youâre bouncing up and down his cock. All of it goes straight to Sunghoon, all of it leads to Sunghoon cumming all over himself in the bathroom and sending you a picture of it. He never leaves his room, though, never does anything about it.
Itâs day minus three til the wedding and youâre at the beach with everyone. The other maid of honor has arrived, and so have the two best men. Jake and Jay, they had introduced themselves as and judging by the way they were looking at you⊠they knew exactly who you were. If you werenât so busy with Heeseung, youâd gladly have slipped into one of their rooms at night.Â
Youâre laying on your towel, happy to have everyone around you be busy with something that isnât you. Your book is in your hands, the words getting more and more raunchy, your thighs pressing together. Perhaps this isnât the best place to read smut, but itâs not like you have any control over when these scenes happen in the book. You just know every word hits you deep and has you biting down your lip. Even with the soreness still left between your legs from last night's visit, you feel yourself growing wetter with every sentence.Â
âIn broad daylight, sweetheart, really?âÂ
The voice makes you flinch, your book flipping closed as you turn around, spotting Sunghoon standing right above you. He is wearing a slight smirk on his lips and you feel your cheeks heat up. Not just because he caught you with your book but because heâs standing there in nothing but his trunks, a cup of iced coffee in his slim hand. His chest is defined, so are his abs. His arms look strong, toned, like they could throw you against a wall and hold you there. You swallow the lust that is daring to come up.
âWhat do you want?â You hiss, sitting up and looking at him.Â
He hasnât really talked to you much. Too busy giving you looks and pretending like he didnât when your sister or parents or any other already arrived wedding party approached him.Â
âWhat would I want?â Sunghoon asks back, tilting his head. The view he has from up here, your tits sitting in your bikini top, looking as delicious as they always did. It takes all in him not to drag you up and take you in front of everyone.Â
You snort and roll your eyes, turning back to your book.
âWell, if there is nothing you want, you can leave me alone.âÂ
He watches you, how you lay back on your stomach, how you open the book and look for the page you just read. Licking over his lips, he roams his eyes over you. At this point, he has lost count of how many times heâs looked at you. How many times he has waited in the bathroom at night for Heeseung to send the videos, the pictures. As much as he was jealous, he enjoyed looking at you as he used his lubed up hand to get himself off. Except⊠for the last two days. He hasnât sent you a picture of him with his cum all over his torso or thighs for two days because he simply hadnât let himself reach climax. Heâs been edging himself for all this time, waiting for the right time to unload all of his seed⊠preferably on you.Â
It doesnât feel like enough. Just getting to watch you through a screen, imagine what you would feel like. Your mouth, he remembers. Vividly. Your pussy⊠he can only wonder. Only guess when Heeseung sends him those videos or when he tells him before they head down to breakfast.Â
Letting his eyes wander over your frame, your neck and back, your hips and ass, your legsâŠÂ
âGet up.â He says. You donât move.Â
He growls.
âI said,â his voice is low and warmth gathers at your core, âget up.â
It is when you still donât move, Sunghoon feels his patience run thin. He places his iced coffee on one of the tables next to the lounge chairs.
Then, he is quick to pull you up, both his hands on your hips, a yelp coming out of you as he skillfully gets you on your feet. You stare at him with wide eyes and your mouth agape. Oh⊠your mouth. He has to restrain himself - already half hard in his trunks. Sunghoon looks around, sees his fiancé in a conversation with your mother. An idea flashes before him and he smirks slightly, alarm bells ringing in your head. What is he planning?
Not even a second passes when he grabs his iced coffee and spills it all over himself.
âGod, watch where youâre going!â He yells, making all of your family members and their friends look at you. This little shit.Â
Linda immediately jumps to her feet.
âLook what youâve done!â She screeches and you press your lips together, acting the part of the guilt ridden sister.
âI am sorry, I didnât mean to!â You defend yourself, but your sister just shoots you a deadly gaze.Â
âMy darling, are you alright?â She is looking at Sunghoon now at his coffee stained self. He shakes his head.
âI really wanted that coffee. And these are my favorite trunks,â he sighs, âcome on, Y/N, youâre gonna get me a new coffee.â
âI can get you a new coffee, babe!â Linda tries, her fingers wrapping around Sunghoonâs arm. It fills you with a sense of triumph when he moves out of her grip.
âYou didnât do this, honey. She did. Go back to your lounging.â He says it to her, but looks at you. And, god, you donât think youâve ever been more aroused in your life.Â
It starts in the elevator up to his room. His hands are on your tits and your tongue is in his mouth. He groans when he feels you grabbing around his cock, hand swiftly inside his swimming trunks. There are no words being exchanged, only moans and sighs and gasps as he presses you against the wall, your kisses getting deeper and heavier by the second.Â
Sunghoon has never wanted anyone as much as you right now. His cock is begging to be freed, leaking into his trunks. His thoughts are spiraling, a part of him just wants to push those skimpy bikini bottoms to the side and just fuck you right here, no matter if someone could walk in at any second, the other wants to take his time, bring you to his room and explore every inch of you.Â
When the elevator stops at his floor, he drags you out, glad no one is around to see as he pushes you against the wall next to the now closing elevator doors, his hand immediately moving between your legs. He moans at the wetness already there. Well aware you havenât been in the pool or the ocean today.Â
âFuck, look at you. So fucking wet.â He mumbles against your lips, pulling them into yet another heated kiss just as his fingers slip underneath your swimming suit, making you whimper. Your hips roll against his hand and he bites down on your bottom lip, fingers getting closer to where you want them, need them, the most.Â
But he pulls away, grabbing your hand and leading you to his room, getting the keycard out of the small pouch he had in the pockets of his trunks. You watch as he opens the door, watch as impatience and need radiate off him and another feeling of triumph, of confidence overcomes you. He is actively choosing you over your sister. He wants you not her.Â
Once youâre inside and the door is closed, you find yourself stuck between him and yet another wall, or in this case, door. His first mission is to get your tits out, his hands losing the strands of your top, the little fabric falling onto the floor a second later. He licks over his lips.
âIâve been dreaming of these, baby,â he whispers, âcome on, get on your knees.â
You do as told instantly. Dropping to your knees, eyes focused on him and only him. On how he now shoves his trunks down slowly, his cock, hard and red at the tip, springing free for you to admire. Your pussy starts throbbing. How badly you want him inside you, how badly you want him to fill you up with his cum, joining Heeseungâs from last night.Â
âOpen up, slut.â Again, you obey. Your mouth drops open, tongue sticks out and Sunghoonâs cock twitches at the sight. This is what he has been dreaming about. Your mouth around his cock, your perfect heavy tits naked and oh-so ready to be painted like that first night.Â
âGood girl, so, so obedient.â He moves closer, right hand around his cock as the left is leaned against the wall, helping him keep his balance. Slowly, he brings the tip of his cock to the tip of your tongue, watching as you lick over it immediately. His eyes donât leave yours when he begins shoving it in, his chest heaving. There is a good chance he might not last long, but he wonât let you leave this room without his cock having been inside you and if that means going again right after his first or second load.Â
You take him like a pro. Feel him slide down your throat, hitting the back of it before going even deeper. You choke just slightly, breathing through your nose. He stops only when he is fully buried, his breath getting heavier with every passing moment.
âYou take it so fucking well, what a good little whore.â Sweat is pooling at the top of his forehead, his knees about to give in. He begins to move his hips slowly at first, but when you tap his thigh, he takes it as a sign to go harder. And, shit, does he go harder. Throwing his head back as he brings both his hands to your head, holding it in place as he thrusts down your throat over and over again. His balls hit your chin whenever he moves to bury himself again, his moans and groans nothing but music to your ears.Â
âOh fuck, oh fuck!â He groans in pleasure, pulling his cock out and the next thing you know there is cum all over you. Your tits are full with his seed, your neck, your chin, your face. You gasp slightly, staring at him with your lips swollen from the roughness of his movements. He breathes hard, hand around his cock to hold it steady as waves of his pleasure make more cum land on your tits.Â
âThatâs right, look at you, fuck,â his eyes are glossy watching your tits covered in his cum, his cock not losing any of itâs hardnes even after the amount of cum he just left on you. Itâs not hard to notice. Your fingers scoop up a bit of it, sucking them clean and not letting him out of your sight. Sunghoon feels like he might have reached heaven.Â
âYouâre so fucking filthy,â he grumbles, pulling you up by your arms and crashing your lips against his again. He pulls you to the bed and pushes you down, watching your cum-covered tits bounce as you fall. You know what he wants and you slightly sit up, your elbows behind you, watching as he moves on top of you. His eyes are still so full of hunger, of need, of pure and hot lust.Â
His cock slides between your tits, his hands pushing them together around it. Then, he begins to thrust again. Just like he had wanted back at the restaurant. Fuck your tits covered in his cum, add a little more.Â
You feel like the luckiest woman on earth with him like this. Using you to get off, his cock fucking your tits like a madman, whimpers and moans and groans, his head thrown back as he enjoys the feeling. It is even better than his imagination. Every second feels like heâs gonna ascend any moment now. His skin is tingling with desire and he wonders if itâll ever stop. Right now, he thinks, he could probably go on for hours, for days. Just you and him and your tits and your mouth and your pussy.Â
When he looks down again, sees the way you look at him, see the way his cock looks sandwiched between your breasts, Sunghoon canât help but cum again, less than before but still enough to cover your chest and neck, adding even more paint to the already perfect canvas.Â
Exhaustion is starting to spread through his bones, but heâs ignoring it. Instead, he pulls you up with him again, kissing you hard, fingers now finally finding their way into your bottoms again. He shoves them inside you immediately.Â
âSunghoon!â You cry out, fingers gripping his strong shoulders as he places you on his lap, straddling him. He fucks you with his fingers, hard and fast. Your pussy squeezes them, your arousal dripping onto his bare thighs.
âSo, so wet. So fucking filthy with my cum all over you. Tell me, baby, are you a whore?â
âY-Yes!â You squeak. He grins wickedly, adding a third finger to the two. You cry in pleasure, bouncing up and down on his long, perfect fingers.
âSo eager to be called a whore. Fucking a taken man, two taken men. Your sisterâs men. Arenât you ashamed?â He breathes into you ear and you moan again, nails digging into his skin.
âN-No!â You answer and he laughs quietly, thumb now pressing down on your clit. You feel the first tears starting to pool in your eyes.
âOh, but you should be. Such a dirty fucking whore, full of cum, getting her pussy fucked by her sisterâs fiancĂ©s fingers,â He chuckles, âand soon his cock.â
You reach the edge just then. When he promises you his lengths, when he tells you how ashamed you should be. As if you donât know. Thatâs what makes this whole thing so ridiculously hot.Â
He fucks you through your orgasm, kissing your mouth again, tongues slashing against each other in a heated fight. You need him to fuck you. Right now. And as if he could read your mind, Sunghoon picks you up, hands underneath your thighs, lips never leaving yours and brings you to the spacious bathroom.Â
First, he fucks you in front of the mirror. Makes you watch yourself, getting fucked like a cheap whore by his sisterâs soon-to-be husband. He makes you lick his cum off his fingers, thrusts them as deep down your throat as his cock is penetrating you.Â
Your pussy might be the best heâs ever had. The second he was buried inside of you, he knew he was done for. Knew this couldnât be the last time he did this. Every bit of you, he wanted for himself. He even thought about asking Heeseung to back off, which he knew his best friend never would. Not with you. Not when you were this perfect. Fulfilling their every need, letting them do with you whatever they wanted.Â
When he gets you in the shower, he washes the drying cum off of you softly. Heâs still inside of you, his still not fully satisfied cock. You squeeze around him, throb around him. You need him to do more, he knows it as well as you. But heâs gentle. Uses a sponge to get every bit of his seed off your body, his lips kissing your cheeks, lips, nose, neck and breasts. Itâs almost too soft for you.Â
This is supposed to be about nothing but sex. He is supposed to fuck you, call you names while youâre at it and then disregard you. Instead, heâs being gentle.Â
That is, until the door outside opens and your sisterâs voice interrupts the softness. It makes room for yet another wicked grin and Sunghoonâs first thrust inside of you for minutes. Your hand flies to your mouth covering the pathetic whimper that would have come out. Sunghoonâs eyes sparkle.
âHoonie? Are you in the shower?â
He begins to thrust again, his hands on your hips, staring into your eyes as he gives you his fucking all. Your eyes roll back.
âYes, darling. Your stupid sister managed to get me all sticky with that coffee!â Â
Your pussy fluttered at the words. He grinned wider.
âOh, like it when I call you stupid?â He whispers into your ear, cock twitching rapidly as he bites into your neck, hips showing you absolutely no mercy.
âUgh, I am so sorry about her! Sheâs not just a klutz, sheâs also insanely dumb. I canât wait to never see her again after this is done.â
Perhaps these words would have hurt you, if Sunghoon wasnât railing you like the god he was. Every thrust was smooth and yet hard enough to make your toes curl. He made quick work to lift you up, your legs now wrapping around his middle as he continued to fuck into you, moaning into your neck to drown out the noise.Â
âYeah, she is a real piece of work,â he finally replied, his eyes staring into yours as he smirked.Â
âNo wonder she canât get a boyfriend! Who would ever want to be with that?âÂ
Sunghoon rolls his eyes, pressing his body closer to yours, kissing you again, his tongue licking sensually over your bottom lip. It makes a shiver run down your spine.Â
âAnyway, where did she go? I didnât find her in her room.â
Sunghoon reluctantly parts from you.
âNo clue. She got me a new coffee and stormed off like the big baby she is.âÂ
He grabs your tits again, squeezing and massaging, nipple between forefinger and thumb, leaning down so he can put it in his mouth and suck and bite down, your hand on your mouth pressing down harder.Â
You explode around him. Squirt like a fucking porn-star, liquid shooting out of you and down his legs, mixing with the water of the shower. Sunghoonâs knees are once more about to give in. He moans against your lips, hoping Linda didnât hear and at the same time also hoping she did. Your climax makes him cum for the third time that day, his hot semen filling your spent pussy, painting it white like the clouds.Â
âThat, she is indeed,â Linda laughs, âanyway, weâre gonna go get dinner in the city, baby. Iâll be at Lizaâs room, love you!â
Sunghoon doesnât answer and Linda just leaves. You feel like no words were even needed to understand.Â
Once youâre sure Linda is gone for good, Sunghoon and you step out of the shower. Itâs quiet between you, quiet and somewhat heavy. You donât like it one bit. Youâre quick to grab your bikini and put it back on, relieved to know you most likely wonât find your sisters back at the beach where youâre headed now.Â
You donât turn around again when you leave the bathroom. And you also donât expect Sunghoon to say anything. Still, when you open the door to leave, you feel just a tiny bit disappointed that he doesnât hold you back.Â
How utterly pathetic of you.Â
Heeseung doesnât come for you that night. You wonder if itâs because of Sunghoon and decide it most definitely is because of Sunghoon.Â
Yet, the slightly younger male doesnât come to seek you out either.Â
Tonight, itâs just you.Â
And perhaps, you think, thatâs just how itâs supposed to be.Â
to be continued...
header & divider credit to the wonderful @wongyuseokie <3
#enhypen smut#heeseung smut#sunghoon smut#heehoon smut#enhypen fanfiction#enha smut#heeseung fanfiction#sunghoon fanfiction#heehoon fanfiction#heeseung x reader#sunghoon x reader#enhypen x reader#enha x reader#enhypen au#enhypen imagine#heeseung au#heeseung imagine#sunghoon au#sunghoon imagine#heehoon x reader#ksmutsociety#kvanity#heeseung x reader x sunghoon#enhypen fic#lee heeseung x reader#park sunghoon x reader
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
10 things you are doing just right ...
Just a pac about things you might not be aware abt that you are doing "JUST RIGHT"
Take what resonates leave what doesn't
Timeless intuition based reading
Pics and dividers credits to their original rightful owners , I do not own them
Pile A. Pile B. Pile C .



Pile A.
You are able to recognise and let go of unwanted thoughts , baggage and emotions in this period + you are not carrying anybody's burdens anymore.
You are being very practical and straightforward in dealing with things.
You are in a good place in terms of your physical health or you will be , you are uplifting others with your energy just being around you is helping them forget about their problems .
You are getting over/ leaving or forgetting about past disappointments that is helping you attract positive outcomes .
You are in a good mood your emotions no longer control you , you have matured with time and the universe is very happy with your progress , you are also not believing in false positivity .
You are moving on & not caring about selfish people you are setting tough boundaries , you are taking care of your physical appearance as well that's doing a lot for you in this period , idk something about mind /body/soul alignment .
You are doing things for you , you are thinking positively about your future, you are giving yourself a lot of time , you are no longer blaming yourself, you are no longer a people Pleaser .
You no longer trust your negative thought pattern sure you sometimes may believe it but you know nothing's gonna happen as you are imagining it's just a "nonsense thought" .
You are treating the opposite gender well ....now I don't know what it means but yes they like your energy/vibe overall .
You no longer tolerate anybody's bull*it ,you simply do not just participate in it , they can argue with a wall , make assumptions and bark in front of the mirror , you are not giving them your precious time and focusing on what's best for you .
If you were going through a period of uncertainty or where nothing was happening it was meant to be like that , you did very well in taking care of your energy and bringing yourself up from rock bottom , you will be stepping into a period of limelight where there's just a lot of people coming into your life , a lot of people wanting to talk to you , you might travel a lot spontaneously, yeah you will be getting a lot of attention and it's not gonna feel burdensome.
Thanks for Reading !!
Pile B.
You are being very kind and gentle to yourself that is helping you regulate your nervous system .
You have accepted things as they are and it's helping you move on from past hurt & disappointments , you might be even moving on from a person , you are truly realising your "value" .
You are attracting wealth and power in your life , you are attracting good things overall it could be as simple as a good meal , you are also watching movies and shows that are helping you in some way in this period .
You are connecting with higher powers spiritually , your guides, your ancestors, spirit animals may be sending you signs it could be anything like a calm video or a fun memory .
You are eating healthy I got this twice , you recognise your manifesting power better now , you are trusting yourself more .
You are doing better mentally pile 2 , you are doing good in life overall I mean better than most of the people, you are able to deal with things better than most people now .
You are balancing your anger ? Like not letting it affect your physical health, you are more chill in this period than you realise lol .
You guys are looking good or dressing better ..okay spirits compliments ...đ
Your throat chakra is healing , you will be getting over sicknesses or a down period very soon .
You are becoming strong physically & mentally , you are also becoming more responsible , yeah others are also respecting you more or being loving towards you , some people are also facing consequences of their actions for doing you wrong , yeah .
You have faced so many things pile 2 , I feel you deeply , you deserve a lot of love & appreciation even if you don't need it you need to know , you deserve every good things , you are not meant to be treated like nothing the right people will appreciate you and will never make you feel less , you are not too much you are not too less no matter what anyone assumes you are an amazing person who anyone will feel privileged to have in their life , spending time with you is truly a blessing , you are a great friend and you will attract understanding and kind people, people who deserve you & value you to the core , I'm so proud of you like pile2 I see you and you are doing so well it takes a lot of strength to be a bigger person and you should neverrr downplay it .
Thanks for Reading !!
Pile C
+18 messages ahead ....
You are connecting with your sexual energy, you will be feeling more confident in your body .
You are attracting people who are exciting and giving .
You are attracting good luck , good karma , people are loving your energy they may be feeling really attracted towards you physically & emotionally .
You are detaching from situations , people , things and your spirit team is giving you a pat on the back for it .
You are not anymore socially anxious you are actually more confident than you give yourself credit for .
You are expressing yourself more or you need too .
You are processing things in a healthy way , maybe your coping mechanisms are helping you a lot in this period .
You are attracting more light hearted energy towards you idk in what form tho maybe you are feeling good , not overthinking that much , or attracting children's and pets yeah ...
You are prioritising yourself, you are more committed to your goals , you are smelling good I'm sorry channeling works this way only ...
You are socialising more or giving good advice to others , you are also starting to incorporate a lot of healthy habits in your routine .
Yeah I strongly feel people who will pick this pile will be reading these messages after a painful transformation and spirit is like good things are already here , I feel like in a way you have surpassed yourself because you have handled things way better... very smoothly than anybody expected, your energy at this moment is really high vibrational it feels like the "love energy " you will be literally attracting opportunities and you are really creating opportunities for yourself in a way , whatever you manifest in this period it's already yours , so believe it đ
Thanks for Reading !!
780 notes
·
View notes
Text
Fatal Trouble
pairing;Â lee jihoon x f!readerÂ
genre;Â fantasy, heavy angst, mild horror, slow burn, smut (minor dni), toxic, fluffÂ
summary;Â where others would steal, bargain, or kill to live the life that jihoon had, he knew the truth. a charmed life was often a cursed one.Â
content warnings; prince!jihoon, princess!reader, both the reader and jihoonâs parents are mentioned/in the fic, duke!mingyu, mild love triangle, jealousy, based on the beauty and the beast, beast!jihoon, some ideas have been borrowed from damsel, royalty au, time period not stated but not modern, curses, pregnancy/miscarriage scares, blood, mauling, murder/death, loss of parent(s), arranged marriage, crying, arguing, mental struggles, vivid descriptions of wounds/shifting, poor use of french, especially old french (i apologize). I am sure there are moreâthis is a very heavy fic. if there is anything glaring I missed, message me. (patreon will have additional warnings)
smut warnings; multiple smut scenes, virgin!reader, mild Dom/sub themes, dubcon leaning noncon briefly, unprotected sex, fingering, oral (f recieving), handjob, pet names, crying (pleasure and not) â as always Iâm sure Iâm missing something, send me a message if itâs glaring. (patreon will have additional warnings)
w/c; 47k and some change (50k~ with patreon bonus)
once upon a time collab masterlistÂ
fatal trouble - enhypenÂ
a/n; thank you to @nothoughtsjustfic for putting together this collab. this has been a lot of fun and incredibly challenging all at the same time. also a huge thank you to @junkissed for proofreading this beast (pun intended). I know you are incredibly busy and you still managed to carve out a little time for me, I appreciate it more than you know.Â
French word bank: Monseigneur - title for prince, Madame - title female royalty (queen/princess), Madame La Reine - title for queen, Monsieur - title male royalty (duke), Maman - mother, Mon fils - son, Mon amor- my love, Mon ange - my angel
before continuing remember reblogs are incredibly important and please read how to support me here

1
He knew they were trying to keep the truth from him. Jihoon wasnât sure why at this point. His mother liked to pretend that if you didnât speak about something, you could pretend it didnât happen. Jihoon knew all too well that not saying something didnât make nightmares disappear.Â
The bile was rising in his throat as he watched the men shift the girlâs bloody arm under the white sheet. She had been exceptionally pretty and incredibly naive. She had truly believed this was her dream come true. She was going to become the Queen of Aetherial Grove. She was changing the lives of her tiny little no-name kingdom... At least half of that was true.Â
âMonseigneurâŠâÂ
Jihoon hadnât realized he had stopped walking or that he was staring. Even as Wonwoo spoke to him, the prince kept his eyes down on the ground. Jihoon was beginning to look ill. Over the past few months, the stress of everything around him had only made his usual ordeal all that much worse. Wonwoo knew and saw everything in the palace, but watching Jihoon now he could see his sunken cheeks and the dark circles under his eyes that were only highlighting how pale he had become.Â
âMonseigneur? Prince Jihoon?âÂ
The droplets of blood were like a trail of guilt for Jihoon as he watched the girlâs body being taken from the courtyard. He could hear Wonwooâs voice, but the blood rushing in his ears and the sound of his own heart beating rapidly were drowning it out until the moment that the Steward placed his hand on Jihoonâs shoulder. âWhat? What doâstop coddling me.âÂ
Lifting his shoulders to shrug the manâs hand from him, Jihoon swallows the bile from his throat and leans his head back towards the sky. It was a cloudy day in the Aetherial Grove. If Jihoon had to be out of the palace, these were the days he preferred. The sunshine hurt his sensitive eyes and reminded him that most nights he hadnât slept as much as he or anyone else would have hoped he had.Â
âMy apologies, monseigneur. You just looked lost in your thoughts, Iââ Wonwoo knew that he wasnât fooling anyone, but especially not Jihoon. He could see the disdainful look on his face as he finally met his eyes. âI just wanted to bring you back to the present. Nothing here was worth your concern and your mother wanted to meet with you in the queenâs salon.âÂ
There was nothing else in the world that Jihoon would rather do less than speak with his mother after what had just occurred, and yet he knewâas alwaysâhe didnât have a choice in the matter. âAh, I see. Well, I wonât keep the queen waiting then. Iâm present and accounted for, Wonwoo; youâve done your job well, as always.â With a roll of his eyes, Jihoon sighs out the last of his words, turning on his heel and turning back up the steps towards the large front doors of the palace he had the unfortunate privilege to call home. Where others would steal, bargain, or kill to live the life that Jihoon had, he knew the truth. A charmed life was often a cursed one.Â
âItâs entirely unfortunate. If they ask for a cause, we say what we always doââÂ
âThat she died of disease?âÂ
Jihoonâs mother was a beautiful woman. In her youth, the queen had been regarded as one of the most stunning women in any surrounding kingdom to Aetherial Grove, and that was what brought her here and to her husband. While age hadnât taken her beauty, stress had begun to show around her eyes and lips as, with each backhand comment from Jihoon, she found a new line forming from frustration.Â
âYes, mon fils, because that is precisely what happened to that poor girl.â Â
Of course it was. That was what had happened to every single ill-fated princess who had made her way into Jihoonâs life. Scoffing under his breath, Jihoon moves to the large windows, feeling his motherâs eyes linger on him for a moment longer. She was frustrated; her annoyance was palpable in the air.Â
âWe persevere and try agaââ
âYou canât be serious, maman. When is enough, enough?â Jihoon didnât allow his mother time to answer his question as she shifted on her chair. He knew the right answer and the answer he would receive. âIâm done with this.âÂ
The air in the room had gone stagnant as the tension rose between them. There was only so much that she could handle before she would snap, and Jihoon was walking that line. âWell, darling, that isnât a choice you simply get to make, is it?â In the queenâs mind, Jihoon might be struggling with the adjustments he was having to make, but his lifeâthis life that they all livedâwas worth all of it. It was worth a few mishaps. âThis isnât about you, Jihoon. Your father is struggling; donât you care? Itâs your jobâno, itâs your duty to step up and accept your position, and you are acting like an insolent child because, why? A few girls we barely knew didnât fit in.â There were more important things to be concerned about in his motherâs mind than things that were now part of the past.Â
âWonwoo, dear? Make sure that the room is in perfect condition for our beautiful new princess, wonât you?âÂ
The bile was back in Jihoonâs throat. He could hear the faint roaring of what could be mistaken as his blood in his ears once again, but he knew that wasnât what it was. No, that rumble was too familiar and terrified him. He was angry, and he wasnât the only one that was taking notice. Inside of Jihoon was his family's greatest tragedy and well-kept secret. While he had been told his entire life that it had never been his fault, every time that he woke up with blood on his hands and face, he would need to be convinced again.Â
The great kingdom of Aetherial Grove was full of wealth and prosperity, not just for the royal family but their subjects. While those around them seemed to fall into debt and ruin over the years, Aetherial Grove seemed to have never faltered. That was far from the truth. Those who truly knew the history of the kingdom would know that Aetherial Grove grew from nothing and not without immense challenges. That was all until Jihoonâs family took the throne and suddenly the challenges were gone, seemingly bringing the kingdom into the sun and good fortune.Â
What had really happened not only changed the lives of everyone in Aetherial Grove, but Jihoonâs life in particular. Jihoonâs father had been a young king with a barren wife. His kingdom had been on the brink of complete collapse when a beautiful man with a charming smile offered him a solution. He would grant the King everything he ever wanted if the King promised him a favor. It seemed simple, and it had been until Jihoonâs father let the wealth and power go to his head, and then the man had come back requesting his favor.Â
âSuch a pretty wife, Sire... and sheâs with child? So far along. My blessings to you both.âÂ
The words had seemed like a threat more than anything. Where the man seemed to be offering his well wishes, the glint in his eye told Jihoonâs father there was something amiss. âShe is, and we thank you.âÂ
âAs you should. It was by my will that it came to be, and what was given can be taken away.â The beautiful manâs smile that had seemed charming at first now seemed so sinister. âIâve come to collect my favor, Sire.âÂ
âIâm certain that you have, but I fear I have nothââÂ
âYou have more than enough. Look around you; all that I have helped you to attain. Yet you lie to me and say you have nothing? Are you attempting to renege on our agreement, Sire?â The man appeared more snakelike than human as his eyes moved along the pretty queenâs face and down to the swell of her stomach. âI wouldnât suggest it. Allow me to stay in the palace until I wish to part. Be that in days, months, years, or until I die.â Â
While the king knew in his heart that the man was right and that all that was around him was due in thanks to the deal he had made with the man, his pride couldn't allow him to admit it. How would he explain to his servants or subjects who this man was that he was allowing to walk around freely in his palace? What could this lithe man do to him? The king was a man of immense power and fortitude. So instead of folding and showing any respect to him, the king scoffed and held his queen closer. âI owe you nothing. Youâll leave us at once.â
âIs that so? Do you know what happens when you donât keep your promises? What happens when you let your ego think for you?â While the man knew what the answer from the king would be, he took a step forward only to feel the guardâs weapon at his chest to keep him back. He knew that something that weak and simple wouldnât stop him if he truly wanted to harm any of them, but for the sake of peace in the moment, he took no further steps and chose to speak instead. âYouâd rather sacrifice something other than your pride? Thatâs fine. Act like a beast and receive one.âÂ
Before the king could even open his mouth to question what the manâs words meant, at his side the queen gasped in pain, feeling a cramp in her stomach. There had been no complications with her pregnancy, and the child had been a miracleâperhaps too much of one. "Darling, whatâs wrong?âÂ
Taking a step back, the man smirks to himself as he watches the king move to his knee at the womanâs side as she sobs and shakes her head in confusion. âShe will survive. Everyone will, for now. We will see if he harbors your pride, Sire. I have my doubts. Iâll take my leave.âÂ
The king wanted to question the man, have him detained, and get to the bottom of his words, but one more fearful scream from his wife had him terrified. Jihoon had been born a month early and thought to be stillborn for a full ten minutes until, by another miracle, he let out a frantic scream as if brought back from the dead.Â
His motherâs voice had become ringing in his ears as Jihoon rested his head against his hand, attempting to force the roaring in his ears to stop. It wasnât until she was on her feet and talking about moving out the previous girlâs things that Jihoon groaned under his breath, loudly bringing everyoneâs attention back to him. âIsabelle. She hasâhad a name. They all have names, maman.âÂ
âObviously, Jihoon. Iâm aware she hadââÂ
âIsabelle, Lia, Haeun, Elise, Baili, Krista, Ara, GretââÂ
âStop it!âÂ
While it was rare for Jihoonâs mother to raise her voiceâto truly yellâtoday she had. She was tired of hearing the names. She didnât need to hear their names again. Their names didnât matter to her. âItâs all unfortunate, Jihoon; Iâm aware! Mon filsâŠâ Carefully lifting her hands, she cups Jihoonâs face and meets his eyes, seeing the pain behind them. That was why she pushed as hard as she did. He was always alone; not even her company would ever be enough, and eventually, like his father was now, she would die. How could she leave her son alone? How could she leave him alone with his secret? With their secret? âItâs not your fault.âÂ
The words he hated more than any others. That was the prettiest lie and the most frequent lie that his mother told him. She had told him that same one time and time again over the span of his life. Resting his hand on her arm, Jihoon closes his eyes and furrows his brows tightly to attempt to hide his frustration as he spoke through gritted teeth. âIt is, so please, maman... Donât make me try this again. I donât need a wife.âÂ
âIâm sorry.â Jihoonâs tears trail over her fingers, and his motherâs heart breaks once again. She had lost count on how many times she had felt that feeling since the man who had cursed them had come into their house. While Jihoonâs curse was much worse, this was hers. She had to watch her son live in pain. âYour father is dying, Jihoon, and you need a queen.âÂ
2
You knew that one day someone would arrange for your hand and you would have to leave your family and your kingdom. However, the day that it happened, you werenât sure you could have ever been prepared for it. A man had shown up at your familyâs small palace in Thornwood, and you had never seen someone who looked more out of place. He had handed your father a letter, and you had watched pride and happiness wash over your fatherâs face before his eyes landed on you. That was the moment your life changed forever.Â
Deep down, you knew that this arrangement was a good thing. Even in just the couple of weeks since your father had received the letter, things had changed dramatically, not just for your family but for your kingdom as a whole. Thornwood had been struggling. In your memory, you couldnât remember a time when the kingdom hadnât been in a time of suffering, but things had only gotten worse over the past few years.Â
Waters once rich with fish were now seemingly empty and the crop fields were barren. There wasnât enough money in the entire kingdom to make any changes that were deemed necessary, much less keep everyone fed, so that was why when the letter came, it had been to everyone else, a miracle. To you, it was your worst nightmare. You had to leave the kingdom you loved more than yourself and marry someone you didnât know and that you didnât love. The only thing that made the weight of the price worth it; it was the dowry already being spent towards the benefit of your kingdom.Â
âThat is what duty is, my love. Sacrifice is difficult, but the reward is great.âÂ
Your fatherâs words looped in your ear as you now stood in front of great golden gates in the Aetherial Grove. You had heard so much and yet so little about this kingdom and its prince. He was a mystery and their were horror stories to match the amount of fairytales that came from the forest that acted as a gate around the kingdom. While you didnât heed much credit to gossip or tales, you couldnât help but think of them now as the servants unloaded your luggage and the gates began to open on your future.Â
âIâve heard the prince is a cruel but handsome man.âÂ
âNo way! Heâs a prince; he has to be charming and kind.âÂ
âBut dear, Y/N... stay out of the woods. Did you hear about the beast of Aetherial Grove? So many women have gone missing. Or at least thatâs the story.âÂ
âDonât listen to silly stories! Your prince will keep you safe. I mean, your king! Oh my goodness, Y/N, youâre going to be a queen!âÂ
Those had been the last things you had heard from your cousins, as they had helped you pack your things. You had never cared enough about wanting to be a queen of anywhere, not even of Thornwood and now you were being thrust into a completely new world and expected to rule. You could feel your breakfast churning in your stomach as the handsome butler ushered you forward and spoke, though you barely listened to what he said, your mind a whirl of anxiety.Â
âMadame Y/N, we are so honored to have you here.âÂ
The man named Soonyoung kept speaking, explaining other servantâs names, but none of them stuck with you because you were unable to focus on anything the moment you stepped foot inside the palace. The room was massive; it felt like an echo chamber. Every spoken word reverberated back into your ears like a bomb that made you feel unsteady on your feet and no one seemed to notice at first until a kind hand rested on your forearm.Â
âMadame⊠are you alright?âÂ
The color in your skin had gone wrong. Jieun could see the chillbumps rising on your arms as you swayed ever so slightly along with Soonyoungâs words. It wasnât like her to act out of turn, but she was happy she had put her hand on you when she did and saw the discomfort in your eyes.Â
âNo. I feel like Iâm going to be sick.âÂ
Those words got everyone in motion. You hadnât wanted so much attention and yet at the mention of being ill, you found yourself on a sofa with your feet up and a wet cloth on your forehead as the pretty girl who had first spoken to you watched over you closely.Â
âPerhaps we could let Madame rest? I can stay with her and we can finish the tour when she is feeling like herself again.âÂ
Soonyoung wanted to argue with Jieun and tell her that there wasnât time for all of the drama, but one more look at you and the pitiful look on your face had him agreeing. âI will let the monseigneur know whatâs happening. Find me as soon as sheâs feeling better.âÂ
The silence that followed the moment that Soonyoung closed the door behind him left you with a sigh of relief and put a smile on Jieunâs face. âIâm sure that is a welcomed change, Madame. I apologize for overwhelming you. Iâm sure between your travels andââÂ
âIâm alright, I promise. Couldâwould it be wrong of me to ask you to just call me Y/N? Your name is Jieun, right?âÂ
The apprehension was clear on Jieunâs face, but there was something about you that made her agree. She knew that if the queen heard her call you anything other than a proper title, she would be reprimanded, but it was nice to be treated differentlyâsimilar to an equalâfor once.Â
âYes, MadaâY/N. Thatâs my name. IâIâm actually the monseigneurâs cousin.â A shy smile pulls at her lips and Jieun shifts closer to you to adjust the cloth on your forehead. âWe will be family soon." You canât help but notice how her brows furrow even slightly and how she swallows hard, using her thumb to keep the cloth from your eyes. âHopefully. Iâas long as you and the monseigneur find no disagreements with the arrangement, I mean.âÂ
It was such a peculiar choice of words for Jieun to use in your opinion, but instead of questioning her, you choose to offer her a smile and nod. âOh, thatâs lovely. Iâm certain that as long as I meet his standards, we can move along with the marriage. Theyâve already paidââ Pressing your lips together, realizing how crass you sound in your words, you wrinkle your nose and try again. âA generous dowry was offered and accepted. My kingdom is very appreciative of this arrangement. Itâs a duty Iâm happy to uphold.âÂ
Jieun knew how this worked. She had done this so many times, with so many other women and yet as she sat with you like this now, it was the first time it made her heart ache. You were too good for this. She feared for you. âIâm certain you are... Iâhowever, I know this isnât my place, madaâY/N, but may I offer some advice as a resident of Aetherial Grove?â Giving a quick glance to the door before avoiding your eyes directly, Jieun speaks through a strained smile. âKeep your head down and please stay out of the forest. Donât go out at night.âÂ
The warning seems genuine, perhaps a sweet word for someone who might be afraid of the dark until you laugh under your breath and Jieunâs gaze finally meets yours. You can see just how serious she is, how her nose flairs and how she looks from the door once again and back to you whispering please before adding once again, âDonât go out at night, Y/N.âÂ
Jieunâs words, much like your fatherâs, were echoing in your mind as you finally were being led through the palace with the girl by your side. She had seemed so sincere, and yet the moment that Soonyoung had returned to check on you, a facade had gone back up. You were no longer Y/N; you were once again Madame and now you were being led to what would become your rooms.Â
âUntil the wedding and after the coronation, of course. Iâm sure you understand. The rooms are a bit smaller than the queenâs, but I hope they will suit you.âÂ
You werenât sure what Soonyoung thought you were used to as you looked around the spacious rooms. If you chose to, you wouldnât have to see anyone else in the palace. You had an entire wing to yourself and servants that would answer directly to you, including Jieun. Of course, you knew that your choice wasnât your own and there would be no staying in your rooms and being alone.Â
âThis is wonderfulâmore than I could possibly ever nââ
âSoonyoung!âÂ
The raised voice made your heart begin to race instantly. While there had been a lot of voices and too much commotion around your arrival, no one had raised their voice once since you had arrivedâthat was until this man. You watch as Soonyoung swallows hard and rubs his lips together as if to steady himself before he turns towards the open doors to your salon and towards a handsome man dressed only like who you could assume to be royalty. This couldnât beâ
âMonseigneurâŠâÂ
Too soon. You had arrived far too quickly for Jihoonâs liking. They had barely gotten Isabelleâs things out of this room before they were moving yours in. Jihoonâs head was busting, his stomach was in knots, and you looked like a fragile doll ready to be broken with eyes wide with fear.Â
âKeep her away from me; is that understood?âÂ
While Jihoon was speaking much quieter now, you could still make out his words as Soonyoung shuffled closer to him. You could so clearly see that there was a disdain for you written on the princeâs face and yet he hadnât said a word to you. This was the first time he had seen you. Did he even know your name?Â
Stepping forward, you hear Jieun mutter madame under her breath as you clear your throat and offer Jihoon a soft smile. âNo, itâs okay, Jieun. Monseigneur?â Ignored. Jihoon barely shifts his eyes towards you, tilting his head almost like a wounded animal when you take another step in his direction. âPrince Jihoon⊠IâmââÂ
âY/N Y/L/N, of the Kingdom of Thornwood. Yes, Iâm aware of your name. Iâm busy, as you can see, madame.â He knew he was being cruel from the getgo, but that look of shock in your eyes was better than seeing you dead on the forest ground. âSoonyoung, with me. I have things to do. Good day, Madame.âÂ
3
It had been two months since you had arrived in Thornwood. While others seemed overjoyed by this fact, you were growing more miserable every single day. There had been times when Jihoon had been forced to be in the same room with you or to be at events with you, but otherwise he had spoken no more than a dozen words since your arrival.Â
Today was no different. Today was the official public announcement of your engagement to the prince. Apparently no flaws had been found in youâhe had deemed you good enough and you would get to suffer by his side until you died.Â
âYou look beautiful, Y/N.âÂ
At least you had Jieun and moments of privacy where you had a bit of normalcy. Smiling at the girl in the mirror. You lift the bracelet from the vanity in front of you as Jieun adds finishing touches to your makeup. âI donât feel beautiful, but thank you.âÂ
Jieun could see the changes that had been slowly occurring in you since your arrival. Your smile was different. Your light was different. You were becoming resigned to a life of loneliness and while it wasnât fair... perhaps that was the sacrifice you and Jihoon would both have to make in order to make this marriage work. This was the farthest that any of the women had ever made it. Some had gotten scared off in hours, some injured in the matter of days, and others killed after a week. You were sad but alive after two months. That was a triumph to be celebrated.Â
âThen I will work harder. Make sure you look even more gorgeous in your dress for the party. Your bracelet is a very good choice.âÂ
You admired Jieunâs resilience. She was easily your closet friend in the kingdom and to say that you valued her presence would be an understatement. Smiling at the piece of jewelry now around your wrist, you run your fingertips over the closed clasp and think back to the moment that it was given to you just days before you had left Thornwood. âMm, it is beautiful. It was a gift from a dear friend. Iâd be lying if I said I didnât miss him.â There was something beautiful and gut wrenching about the twisted golden thorns circling your wrist. The design was so delicate and yet in itâs simplicity, you felt a pang of home sickness.Â
âOh? Iâit wasnât my place.âÂ
Lowering your arm into your lap, you smile at Jieun in the mirror as you shake your head. You knew it was a bold choice to wear the bracelet. It wasnât a gift from your betrothed, and yet you hadnât received a gift from Jihoon. You had little fear that he would even notice a bracelet on your wrist anymore than he would notice you in the room for longer than he had to. âItâs fine, Jieun. No harm done. Iâll have something to far outshine it soon enough, wonât I?âÂ
Your words seem to ease Jieunâs mind, but they only cause yourself to spiral. You can already feel the weight of the ring on your finger and wonder if that weight will be worth the price.Â
In his own room, Jihoon was thinking much the same. He had already felt the weight of the box in his jacket pocket and it felt as if it weighed an impossible amount. It wasnât his life that he felt that he was ruining, but yours.Â
He had gone out of his way to avoid you over the past two months. It had been equally as difficult as it had been easy. His mother was furious with him and his behavior, and yet you were still breathing and now you were going to be officially named as his future queen. All that he had done had been for the sake of his kingdom and, in his own twisted way, for you.Â
It wasnât that Jihoon didnât have a desire to know you. You were stunning. He had found many of the other women who had been brought to the palace beautiful, but the first day you had been brought in, he knew that he was in trouble. You were a breath of fresh air with how you lit up the room until he spoke you with such unkind words and he watched your smile fade. It was a hefty price to pay to keep you at a distance, but a distance was safe. At a distance, he could observe and yearn. There was no true danger in that as long as you followed the rules.Â
You were as intelligent as you were beautiful. Jihoon knew about all of the books you were requesting in the palace library. If they happened to not be found, he made sure they were the next time you had them in your mind. He knew that you loved fresh air, and as terrified as that made him, as long as it was during the daylight hours, he would permit it. So one day you woke to learn that there were horses at your disposal in the palace stable.Â
And yet, with all the things that Jihoon tried to provide for you, he watched your spirit diminish daily. You made friends with the staff easily, despite knowing that the queen wouldnât like it. In that way, you were much like him and that made it even easier for him to learn about how truly depressed you were.Â
Standing in front of the floor-length mirror, Jihoon stretches his arm out, allowing Soonyoung to adjust his sleeves as he listens to Junhui, the palace chef, explain the menu for the nightâs event.Â
âDuck confit served with roasted potatoes, cauliflower gratinââÂ
âTell me again what she said, Junhui.âÂ
This was the third time that Junhui had attempted to make his way through the entirety of the menu for the prince to interrupt him and want to talk about you. While he enjoyed having you in the palace and your frequent visits to his kitchen, at the moment he wished he had never divulged that information to Jihoon. Sighing into his words, Junhui lowers his head before lifting it once again to meet Jihoonâs eyes in the mirror. âWhy are you obsessing over it?âÂ
âYou know why.â Shaking out his hand, Jihoon scowls at Soonyoung and Junhui each as he turns from the mirror, deeming himself dressed. âIâmâthis is happening tonight and then in less than a month sheâll be my wife. She hates meââÂ
âBecause you want her to, Jihoon.â It was Soonyoung who spoke up this time. He knew that if this were anyone else in the palace, they would be reprimanded for how they spoke to Jihoon, but he had been chosen to be his butler for a reason. He was the same age as the prince. They had grown up in the palace together, as close as brothers could be without sharing blood. He knew every detail of Jihoonâs secrets and regrets. âYou purposely hurt her to keep her awaââÂ
âAnd sheâs alive! For fuckâs sake, Soonyoung. What would you have me do? Waltz into her salon and profess my affection? Tell her about what I am." Scoffing into his words, Jihoon tugs roughly on the lapels of his expensive jacket, feeling the threads shift at his strength. âMy darling, Y/N... I regret to inform you of my terrible curse. Iâll never be able to show you true affection, dear, out of fear that I might remove your windpipe with my teeth.âÂ
With Jihoonâs words, you could have heard a pin drop at how silent the room had gone. He knew what Soonyoung and Junhui wanted to say to himâthe same thing everyone always did; this wasnât his fault. Jihoon knew all too well that it was his fault. He couldnât control the beast and that was his fault.Â
âLetâs get this over with.â
4
Your life was now one massive echo chamber. As you stood in the middle of the ballroom with people moving around you, it was as if nothing that was being said made it to your ears. Instead of intelligible words, you found muffled and warbling phrases muddling together as you nodded along. The only thing keeping you grounded to the marble under your heels was the champagne flute in your fingers that kept being refilled.Â
âSuch a handsome couple. Truly, we are blessed. Think of the children she will bless the kingdom with.âÂ
Jihoon couldnât even find it in himself to force a fake smile as members of his extended family regarded you like well-kept livestock. He knew the duty to the kingdom. His was to become king and to take a queen, and that was why you were even in this room and near him in the first place, but the fact that they expected him to put a child in you. How was he going to be able toâThe bile was sitting in his throat. It was too close to dark and Jihoon could feel the rumbling in his head as he dug his nails into his palm as you shifted closer to him to get out of someoneâs way.Â
âMy apologies, monseigneur.âÂ
Your voice was so small that it made the hair on Jihoonâs neck stand up. He could smell the champagne on your breath and he couldnât help how his eyes moved over your beautiful face and down your frame. Taking a calming breath, Jihoon shakes his head and carefully removes the flute from your fingers, placing it on a tray as a servant passes by. âQuite enough. They are trying to keep you inebriated and pliant. Youâll be sick in the morning.âÂ
Wrinkling your nose to Jihoonâs hushed words, you meet his eyes and barely hold back a scoff. You knew he wasnât wrong, but you were four glasses of champagne in and it made the night feel less like hell. âAs you wish.â The room was too loud without something in your hand, without your distraction. You could hear the gossip now. You could hear the compliments and their halfhearted meanings, but you were better at putting on a fake smile. âMm, canâwill you give me my ring now?âÂ
You just wanted to get this over with. Somehow that both broke Jihoonâs heart and brought him back to reality. He had made you this way. It was a fair question. You had endured a couple of hours of this and he had been watching the sun slowly fading behind the trees for the last half hour. âAs you wish.âÂ
The sound of Jihoon clearing his throat brought a hush over the room. You watch as he puts on the first fake smile of the night while opening and closing his fist at his side out of nerves. âThank you, each of you for spending the evening with us. On behalf of myself and Madame Y/N, we wanted to let you know how deeply grateful we are that you could share this important moment with us.âÂ
Jihoon was good at lying and yet as you watched him, transfixed on his frustratingly handsome face, you realized you knew he was lying through his teeth. There was something about his body languageâthe way his voice went up and down in octaves as he went through his well-practiced speech. He had planned places for people to laugh, for them to aww and coo; he was a puppet master working the strings so well, but you could see the strings for what they were just as well as you saw the pain in his eyes.Â
âItâs an exciting day.â Smiling along with the happy laughter, Jihoon looks down at this jacket to find you watching him carefully. You are the only one who sees his facade break for a moment as he takes the ring box from his jacket and you are the only one who sees how his fingers tremble with fear as he removes the delicate ring. âA giâgift for my beautiful betrothed...âÂ
The stuttering of his words is the first real indication to everyone in the room that Jihoon might be breaking and at the first sign of a muttered word, you arenât sure why it puts you into motion, but it does. A wave of desire to protect the man in front of you from anything, including anxiety or embarrassment, puts a smile on your face and has your left hand lifted towards Jihoonâs hand. âAnd what a stunning gift it is, monseigneur. Iâm truly honored that Iâll share my life with you.âÂ
You were a beautiful liar. Jihoon could see and almost smell the lie on you, but he was so thankful to you as he slid the diamond ring on to your finger. Your eyes kept him steadfast and calm as the rest of the room erupted in cheers. Not even the rumble in his ears and tingling at the back of his neck stood a chance in that moment as Jihoon leaned down to press a kiss to the back of your knuckles, keeping his eyes locked with yours.Â
There was a shift in the air with that kiss. A breath of hope filled your lungs seeing the look in Jihoonâs eyes. Would things finally change? Could you find a way to love your new home and your soon-to-be husband?Â
Fingers wrap around yours as Jihoon laughs under his breath, accepting well wishes for you both. You are thankful for him keeping you grounded, much like your champagne had once been. You find yourself even more thankful when he excuses you both under the excuse that you are tired and he must allow his beautiful fiancĂ©e to get her rest.Â
âOh, thank God. I felt like I was going to suffocateââÂ
The moment the doors shut behind you and Jihoon, you feel his hand drop from yours, leaving you feeling confused and cold. You watch as he runs his fingers through his hair and rocks his head from left to right as if to release the tension in his neck before he turns his attention back to you with a now familiar disappointed look on his face.Â
âGo to your room, Y/N. Itâs going to be night soon.âÂ
This was all you were getting from Jihoon after such a touching moment? Where had the man who had slipped the ring on your finger and looked so deeply into your eyes gone? âIâIâm not tired, yeââÂ
âAnd I donât care. This isnât about your ability to sleep. Do as you are told.â It was getting harder to keep himself calm as you scoffed at him. Jihoon could see your lips moving; he could hear the dull mumble of your words, but it was difficult to make out the words. Something else was talking over his senses and Jihoon knew that this wasnât going to be a good night. âShut up, for the love of God. I put that fucking ring on your finger so you will obey me! Go to your goddamn room and lock the door, Y/N!âÂ
Stunned by Jihoonâs outburst, you stumble back on your heels in an attempt to get away, only to feel your balance waver. Fingers wrap tightly around your wrist above your bracelet and you meet Jihoonâs angry eyes, noticing for the first time a slight shift in their color. His once dark brown eyes seem golden as he looks from your face down to the bracelet, his lips curling in anger. âI told you that you drank too much... And what the fuck is this?âÂ
âLeave me alone, Jihoon.âÂ
Once again, your voice was soft and too small, almost breaking Jihoonâs heart, but he wasnât the one that you were dealing with anymore. The jealousy flaring in him wasnât a normal occurrence; this side of him came with the predator that was ready to run free with the moon rising in the sky.Â
âIâll do what I want since you seem to do the same.â Using just the strength in his fingers, Jihoon breaks the fragile clasp of your bracelet, ignoring your sobbing pleas for him to stop. You both watch as the gold thorns slip from your wrist and clatter to the ground at Jihoonâs feet. âNow, obey me.âÂ
Tears streaked your cheeks and down your neck as you leaned against the door of your room. Clutching the broken bracelet to your chest, you sob openly, wondering if the sound you are hearingâthe wailing growlâis coming from you or your imagination. By the time that you are calm enough to think clearly, the sound is gone. You find yourself alone and numb, with pieces of your home shattered in your hand, much like your heart inside your chest.Â
5
It was too bright. There was the smell of copper in his nose and Jihoonâs body felt as if he had been trampled by a stampede of horses. Turning onto his back, he rests his forearm over his eyes and groans, the now too familiar feeling of the forest floor under his bare back.Â
Everything had happened too quickly and Jihoon had barely made it off the palace grounds before his body had been torn apart by his curse. It hurt every single time, and every time he could remember it in detail. He supposed that was the point. A curse wasnât meant to be pleasant. He was being punished. His family was being punished. That was why his muscles were torn fiber by fiber, his bones broken bit by bit, and his skin ripped until nothing human was left of himâonly the beast.Â
To anyone looking at him, unknowing what they were seeing, Jihoon would look like a bear. A great, large black bear with golden brown eyes that had tormented Aetherial Grove from the moment that he had reached puberty. His mother and father had thought that the manâs curse had been a lie. Perhaps his threat had been that Jihoon almost died during childbirth, but no, it was much worse. Instead, they had witnessed their precious son shifting into a monster and slaughtering half of their palace staff after becoming slightly upset.Â
What was worse about Jihoonâs curse was the morning after the beast would take hold of him. Not only would his body feel as if it had been in fact torn apart at the very fiber, but he could remember down to the second what the beast had done. He could see every person he had killed or mauled but he had no way to prevent it. No matter how hard Jihoon tried, every single princess would wander out of the palace at night due to stupidity or curiosity and each time the beast would claim them.Â
That was why Jihoon treated you the way he did. That was why he kept you at a distance and made you hate him. He couldnât kill you if you were never around him.Â
âJihoon.âÂ
Wincing at Soonyoungâs voice, Jihoon turns on his side and pulls his legs up towards his stomach. Of course he would already be looking for him. He was grateful, but there were days when he wished everyone would just let him vanish or let him die. Was he worth this?Â
âCome on. I have clothes... Iâyou need to come back quickly. Your fatherââ This wasnât something that Soonyoung wanted to tell Jihoon. He could already see the realization in the princeâs eyes as he took the clothes from his hand and swallowed the air as if it were water. âIâm sorry. IââÂ
âStop. I donât wantâfuck.â Jihoonâs clothes felt foreign against his skin as he quickly dressed himself, hearing his heart in his ears. This was just one more thing that the curse was taking from him. âIs heââÂ
âNo. No, heâs justâthe doctor says before the day is over. Your mother told me to find you as quickly as possible.â Â
Jihoon didnât need to hear anything else. He didnât want to hear anything else. He was feeling far too many emotions at once while trying not to let a single one of them bubble to the surface as he walked quickly in front of Soonyoung towards the pair of waiting horses.Â
On a good day, any of the palace horses would struggle to trust Jihoon; animals were smarter than normal humans by a long shot. Today was not a good day; every tug at the horses reigns had the animal fighting for control and more terrified of what was on her back.Â
âPlease⊠Iâm trying!â Yelling wasnât helping, but Jihoon was swallowing back the bile in his throat as he saw the palace come into view at the treeline. He was so close. He just needed the horse to push forward for a little while longerâand then it happened; perhaps Jihoon had been too sharp with his heel into her flank but the horse had enough and Jihoon felt the wind knocked out of his lungs as his back met the ground.Â
You knew something was off at the palace. Everyone was on edge and yet no one would tell you anything. Something had gone from the moment that the engagement party had ended, and then when you had woken up, it was worse.Â
You had heard loud yet hushed muttering from every corner that would silence the moment you came into few. You werenât privy to a single thing and yet the ring on your finger told you that you should be. Werenât you going to be important to them? Shouldnât you already be important?Â
Outside was better. The palace always felt suffocating to you. From the first day you had walked it, not only had it become your echo chamberâevery word reverberating back a thousand times into your brainâbut also it had sucked the air from your lungs. You knew that Jihoon preferred you to stay inside, even during the day, but today was one of the days when you didnât feel much like doing anything he wanted.Â
The palace gardens were filled with beautiful things. Flowers, vines, treesâanything you could think of you might find in front of you and yet it made you sad as you thought back to the shards of gold now laying on your vanity. You had tried to piece back together your treasured bracelet only to make it worse. The clasp had held the delicate overlapping thorns together and when Jihoon had broken it, there was nothing left to keep them from falling apart. That was much like your heart as you had sat in front of the vanity and struggled uselessly, watching the bracelet become unrecognizable. There was only the memory of when you had received it now and you would hold it close to your heart and cherish it forever.Â
You hadnât known many boys in Thornwood. Your father was a strict king when it came to his kingdom and his daughter. It had been in your early teenage years when you had finally met Kim Mingyu and he was the first boy your father hadnât instantly run off.Â
Mingyu was the son of a duke. In your fatherâs eyes, perhaps one day if nothing better came along that might be a suitable match, but it was more than thatâyou had been happy to just have a friend. It wasnât until you were older, months before the letter came from Aetherial Grove, that you realized something different might come from your relationship with Mingyu. While you had never considered him in that light before, there was something about the possibility that made you take a step back and really picture it only to have the picture torn in front of your face by a royal letter.Â
âSo, donât make fun of it... Itâs not perfect; Iâve never done work with gold before.â You had fondly watched Mingyu as he fumbled slightly with the delicate clasp of the bracelet before finally managing to secure it on your wrist. âMaybe itâs not half bad. I just wanted you to have a little piece of home while youâI mean in your new home, Princess.âÂ
Your piece of home and piece of your best friend was now shattered by someone you were starting to despise. Trying your best to push the angry and painful thoughts from your mind, you walk closer to the edge of the garden, looking out towards the treeline. The forest was truly beautiful. You could understand the appeal and why many wanted to explore it, though you had been forbidden to do so, even on horsebackâso why was it that someone was coming out of it now?Â
Squinting slightly to the brightness of the morning sun, you tilt your head before shock registers within you as you watch the horse buck hard. Your eyes follow Jihoon as he falls backwards from the horse and lands in the tall grass hidden from your view, causing your heart to sink. âOh my god, Jihoon!âÂ
By the time you make it on foot to Jihoon and Soonyoung, the butler is down from his horse and on his knee beside the prince. With your hand at your stomach and tears stinging your eyes, you quickly move to the other side of Jihoon and do the same without regard to your dress or your legs as the ground bites into your knees angrily. âJihoon? What the hell happened, Soonyoung?âÂ
You were different than any other woman that had come to Aetherial Grove by far. Even as Soonyoung checked over Jihoon for injuries, being careful not to move him too quickly, he watched you curiously, surprised by your quick arrival. âIâthe horse got spooked, I think. She threw him. Heâsâthereâs blood. Monsâ Jihoon?âÂ
Anxiety and fear had your stomach in knots as you saw the blood from the back of Jihoonâs head on Soonyoungâs fingers. Wrapping your fingers around Jihoon's, you whine his name, watching his eyelids flutter for a moment before he groans in pain and slowly opens his eyes, starting to come to.Â
âFuckââ Attempting to sit up, Jihoon hisses in pain and tightens his fingers around yours before laying back down for a moment. âStupid fucking mare..." Jihoon knew it wasnât the horses fault, but the pain radiating through his back and his head made him want to lash out at something. âI need to get to the palaceâFather.âÂ
Using your free hand, you put a light amount of pressure on Jihoonâs shoulder when he tries to sit back up. âJust wait, Iâplease? You can wait a moment. You are bleeding, JiââÂ
âStâstop coddling me. Iâm fine.â Moving his hand to wrap it around your wrist where your bracelet had been the night before, Jihoon lightly draws a circle over your pulse point with his eyes still closed. ââM fine. I have to get to the palace. Father needs me.âÂ
Nothing that Jihoon was saying made sense to you, but Soonyoung simply nodded along while gently moving your hand from Jihoonâs shoulder.
âI know. Perhapsââ Timidly meeting your eyes, Soonyoung almost winces before speaking. âI could put the prince on the horse with you. Iâve seen you ride... I thinkââÂ
âDonât be ridiculous, Soonyoung. I can do it alone.âÂ
âOf course.âÂ
When you and Jihoon speak up almost at the same time, Soonyoung looks taken aback, his eyes moving from one person to the other before he sighs and settles on the prince. âLet her help. SheâJihoon, she wants to help.âÂ
You shouldnât have to help. You shouldnât be seeing him like this, weak and flustered. He was going to be the king, your king. More importantly, as things were progressing, Jihoon was going to be your husband and now you were having to mother him already. Pathetic. Lee Jihoon was pathetic and unworthy of the throne and you.Â
Without another word, Jihoon lets you and Soonyoung help him to his feet as he sways on his feet, unable to keep his balance. Lifting your hand, you carefully touch the back of his head furrowing your brows when Jihoon winces and jerks away from you in pain. âThis looksâyou should see the doctor, Monseigneur.âÂ
Your voice had started so strong and yet the more you spoke with Jihoon, your hand loosely in his, your confidence faltered. Sighing under his breath, Jihoon nods and glances towards you as you move to take the reigns of the horse that had bucked him off. With you next to her, there was a calm in the air. There was no fear in her eyes, almost as if she knew that you wouldnât let anyone, beast or man, harm her.Â
âJihoon. Justâcall me Jihoon. I donât like when you call me Monseigneur in private. Youâyouâre going to be my wife. It seems odd.âÂ
While you agreed, you could also remember this same man reminding you that you would obey him. You offer him a gentle smile and a nod as you carefully slip your foot into the stirrup before hosting yourself into the saddle. âOf courseââ Swallowing hard, you glance down at your hands on the horn of the saddle, the reigns loosely draped over your fingers. âJihoon.â You had said his name many times, and even when you were terrified for his wellbeing, saying it now at his request felt different.Â
Furrowing his brows tightly, Jihoon could feel the air around him shift. There was something about you. From the moment that you had stepped foot in Aetherial Grove, things were different. It wasnât just that he was trying to distance himself from you; it was something else and he couldnât quite put his finger on it.
With a few muttered curses and a disgruntled groan, Jihoon finds himself seated behind you with his hands hovering over your waist. You could feel the warmth of them through the layers of your dress and even the boning in your corset, so much so that it was difficult to not let a small smirk pull at your lips when you urge the horse to take a step forward and feel Jihoon finally grab ahold of you for stability.Â
âMay I ask you something?âÂ
Despite your ability to keep the horse much steadier than he had, Jihoon still found himself wincing with each step. He almost felt every stone under the horseâs hooves as you carefully directed her towards the palace. Swallowing hard to your question and tone, Jihoon chews on his cheek before glancing back to where Soonyoung was following at a moderate distanceâalmost too far, leaving Jihoon to defend for himself with you.Â
âI suppose. Is something wrong?â He knew that was the wrong question to ask the moment it left his mouth. Closing his eyes, Jihoon leans his head back towards the sky and listens to you take in a sharp breath as the horse shifts to the right and towards the palace stables.Â
Did he really want to know? You had a laundry list of things that were wrong, but that wasnât what you wanted to ask right now. âUm, itâs notâwell, in a way. I donât wish to seem unappreciative or spoiled, butââ Sighing under your breath, you furrow your brows, deciding to start over. âWhat I mean is, I am just wondering if there is something about me you find unpleasant. Perhaps you are unhappy with this arrangement? Iâm not attractive or intelligent enough to be your queen and in which case, Monseigneur, perhaââÂ
âStop it. What are youââ Unconsciously digging his fingers into your sides at your corset, Jihoon grits his teeth, feeling the frustration rising in him. He knew this was his fault and while he hadnât planned on changing it, he also didnât want you as miserable as you seemed right now. âYou arenât unpleasant. I donâtâyou arenât unpleasant to me, Y/N.âÂ
Straightening your back out of surprise, you take in a deeper breath at the strength of Jihoonâs grip. It wasnât just that his touch had tightened; it was how he was speaking to you. There was a layer of desperation in his voice, as if he were begging you to understand without truly saying it. âOâokay. I justââÂ
âNo, just nothing. You are beautifulâthe most beautiful woman Iâve ever seen. You are going to make a perfect queen, I have no doubt. Iââ Stopping short, Jihoon removes his hands from your waist, realizing that you have brought the horse to a stop. There was no need for him to be touching you anymore, no need for all of the dramatics and yet he couldnât help himself as you glanced back at him, your eyes low, causing your lashes to shield your gaze from him. Resting his index finger under your chin, Jihoon sighs softly and allows himself a moment to be a man who is truly engaged looking at his future bride. âYou are incredible and I hate myself for making you feel so small. One dayââÂ
Every word was reaching your ears and yet your heart was beating so fast and hard in your chest that you were afraid you might fall from the saddle and perish on the ground. Jihoonâs simple touch had your skin on fire and something lit inside of youâa desire that you had never felt in your life. You had come close to what you suspected had been desireâa brush of lips across yours from Mingyuâbut this, Jihoonâs thumb grazing your bottom lip and watching your lips part felt private and precious. Â
"Perhaps one day youâll learn why I amâwhy I have kept youââ Jihoon was struggling to find the right words and he could see Soonyoungâs panicked face as the man paced a few feet away. âI have to go, Madame. Remember the rules, please. That is all I ask of you.âÂ
You start to speak and to argue with Jihoon. You want him to finish explaining himself, but he jumps from one topic to the next and then suddenly the back of your knuckles are against his lips. You are left watching Soonyoung help him down from the horse and your eyes follow both until they disappear behind the palace walls.Â
Every part of Jihoonâs body was aching. It always was after a night of shifting, but the fall from the horse had only served to make it worse. Brushing his fingers over the back of his head, he and Soonyoung moved through the halls. Jihoon winces in pain, though his mind lingers on you and the range of emotions he had just taken you through. None of this was fair to you. He hoped and prayed that one day he might be able to explain this to you and you understood. He wished with every fiber of his being that he would be able to keep you alive, but the more he started to feel something for you, a longing, the rumbling from the beast trapped inside of him grew louder and more angry with jealousy.Â
6
âMon amourâŠâÂ
It was difficult for Jihoon to watch his mother grieve while his father took his last breaths. He was expected to stay strong and on the surface he did. He showed little to no emotion. Jihoon was a rock for his family and especially his mother, but on the inside, the son that his father had raised was devastated as he watched his father pass. He wanted nothing more than to run from the room and lock himself away in his rooms to get rid of the pressure behind his eyes.Â
âComeâcome here, mon fils.â Beckoning Jihoon closer, his mother sobs softly through the words before taking his hand and bringing it to her heart, using him as the anchor he would have to be. âIâmon fils.âÂ
Jihoon knew without his mother even saying the words what she was thinking. He knew what came next. The mourning period. The funeral and the burial, but most importantly, he would sooner rather than later now go from crown prince to king. âI know, maman. Iâll take care of it all. You shouldâIâll have Jieun help you to your rooââÂ
âNo! Not yet. I canât leave him, Jihoon.âÂ
The tears that Jihoon was trying to keep at bay were harder to push back now as his mother pulled from him and clung to his fatherâs arm. He didnât understand that sort of love, though he had witnessed it through them his entire life. He hoped for that sort of love. It made him think of you and how confused you must be not knowing what was truly happening in the palace.Â
âOkay, Iâm sorry, maman. I knowâŠI wonât make you leave. Iâm sorry.â Brushing his lips against the top of her head, Jihoon feels his mothers grief wash through him in how her body trembles. Leaning his head back towards the ceiling as he takes a deep breath to keep his emotions at bay, he nods once and finds Wonwoo by his fatherâs bed with a solemn look on his face. âStay with her, please. Until she is ready to leave, you and Jieun. I needâI have to do something.âÂ
Even stepping out of the room and into the hall, Jihoon could feel a bit of the weight lifting from him but what replaced it was worse. Clenching his fist over his chest, he takes a deep breath as he leans against the wall hidden from prying eyes. Somehow the anger and disappointment that he felt every day were nothing compared to the feeling he was overwhelmed with now as Jihoon tried to force himself forward towards your room.Â
Everything had gone deadly silent on the side of the palace where you resided. You knew that you were a bit of distance from the kingâs rooms and Jihoonâs but usually you could hear servants in the hallways going about their tasks and tending to the queen, but today there was nothing. It was making your anxiety all that much worse after the morning and your interaction with Jihoon.Â
The prince was truly an enigma to you. While you wanted to hate him, and in some ways perhaps you did resent him, you couldnât find it in your heart to truly allow yourself in your heart to hate Jihoon. There was something inside of him that wanted to be close to you. You had sensed it more than once now and even if the other part of him was pushing you away, the man who had looked deeply into your eyes and taken your breath away with a simple touch had your mind spiraling.Â
Sitting at your window, you lean your head back against the wall with a book in your lap. You had started to read it hours ago now, but every word led you back to where you were nowâyour eyes on the trees as their leaves moved with the wind as it picked up in speed. There was a storm coming. You hated storms. You always had, but back in Thornwood you had distractions and protection. You had run to your father or mother, who would keep you close. You had let Mingyu wrap his arm around you, shielding you from the soundsâas soon as Mingyu enters your mind again, you push him out. Since the previous day's incident with your bracelet, it seemed he wouldnât leave your thoughts alone.Â
The rain starts calm, with large drops that hit your window with dull thuds but quickly, but with the wind getting stronger so does the rain. Wincing, you close your book and recoil slightly from the sounds of the water assaulting your window when a knock at your door startles you even more, causing you to gasp in surprise.Â
âY/N?âÂ
Jihoon knew he should wait for you to answer the door or at least speak, but the sound of your fear takes away his logic. He had asked for you to lock your door but this was one time he was glad you rarely listened to him when his eyes scanned your parlor to find you with your hands over your head sitting by your window. The pain that he had been feeling from the loss of his father is shifted to the side in place of his concern for you as Jihoon mutters your name and quickly moves across the room and kneels by your side, timidly reaching for your hands. âWhatâs happened? Whyâare you okay?âÂ
Embarrassment washes over you when you realize that Jihoon is in your room, seeing you cower from a few loud noises. You are certain this isnât who he or anyone wants for the queen. Though no one truly looked to the queen in a time of perill, you still should be able to lead and command, and here you were meeting Jihoonâs eyes, attempting to feign courage. âOâof course. Iâmânothing happââÂ
Jihoon could tell you were lying as you spoke. He had seen the times you lied and thought to some people you were a decent liar; with him, he could see right through it. Starting to call you out on it to cut you off, he doesnât have to at the first strike of lightning and boom of thunder. The act you are putting on shatters as Jihoon watches you tightly close your eyes and visibly shake as the sound reverberates around the room.Â
Storms had never bothered Jihoon; in fact, in many ways he enjoyed them. The walls of the palace made the rain louder and the thunderclaps seem to last longer, which in turn drowned out the rumbling he heard constantly. Clearly, you didnât feel the same way. You put on a good face; it was a beautiful one and a strong one, but deep down Jihoon could see how delicate and precious you were.Â
âMon angeâŠâ Muttering under his breath, Jihoon moves his gaze from you to the window, watching the rain angrily coming down to the earth. âI didnât know you were afraid of storms.â Speaking loud enough for you to hear him now, he slides his hand along the back of your arm towards your elbow, trying to get your attention on him fully. âBut IââÂ
âYou donât know anything about me, Jihoon.â You didnât mean to lash out at Jihoon; however, in the moment you felt raw. His words felt like needles and his touch felt foreign, because it was. No matter how much you wanted to be close to him, it was difficult to rely on someone who had spent so long pushing you away and treating you like a virus. âWhaâwhy are you here?âÂ
Your reaction to him was valid. While it stung, Jihoon understood where it came from. If Soonyoung had been there, he would agree that he brought this upon himself. Nodding along with you, he sighs and closes his hand, removing it from your arm to give you a bit of space. âI know. IâI apologize forâthereâs a lot that you just don'tâ" Leaning his head back, Jihoon feels your eyes follow him even as he closes his eyes and takes a calming breath, feeling the waves of emotions roll over him again. âI donât deserve your kindness with how I have treated you. There is a reason behind my actions but itâs not something I can explain toââ Â
âJihoon! Youâve been cruel. Youâve banished me toââ Wincing to another boom of thunder, you whimper and slide from the window seat into the floor next to Jihoon, feeling him shift to sit next to you. It takes a moment for you to regain your composure but he never rushes you; instead, Jihoon stays close without crowding you. âAll I know are these rooms and what I have been able to explore of the palace. You wonât let me off the grounds. I try to get close to you and you get angry at me. YouââÂ
Tears slip down your cheeks similarly to how the rain marks the glass of your window, and all Jihoon can do is watch and listen to you falter, finally speaking through your sobs. In his mind he knew why he had made you do all of these things and why he had pushed you away but to you it made no sense. It wasnât fair to you, just like it wasnât fair that you never knew anything that was happening in the palace you now called your home. âThere is so much I need toâY/N⊠Itâs difficult, but please try to understand that I have been attempting to shield you and keep you safe. I know that I have gone about it in a strange way and itâs not fairââÂ
âItâsâitâs not fair! What did I do to deserve this? Why did you make me come here, Jihoon? Why me?!â Finally pulling your legs up, you lean forward and rest your forearms on your knees burying your face against your arms, letting out sobs that only get louder with each deep rumble of thunder.Â
Jihoon knew that he hadnât been the one to make you come to Aetherial Grove but he felt responsible enough. You were breaking his heart as your body shook with grief and fear, something he understood all too well. Leaning his head back against the base of the window seat, Jihoon shifts his eyes down and to the side to keep an eye on you, not rushing you as you work through your emotions. Resting his arm over his chest, he carefully reaches for your fingers, circling his thumb over the diamond on your finger. âIâm sorry, Y/N. IâI wish I could fix it. Iâmy father, heââ Sighing, Jihoon looks away from you, feeling your fingers shift to hold on to him at another crash of thunder as he speaks. âHe died a few hours ago. Everything is going to change now.âÂ
The weight of Jihoonâs words hit you even as the thunder shakes your windows and you lift your head to look at him. That was why everyone was quiet and where everyone had been. Why had no one told you? Were you not important enough to know that the king had passed away? As soon as the anger starts to sink in for you and you think to complain, it passes when you see the look on Jihoonâs face. Yes, you were still upset and a lot of your frustration was with him but he was in pain. How could he not be? Then it dawns on you; he is the prince and a son. Heâs not allowed to mourn the same way around certain people. Those people wouldnât be you.Â
âOh, JihoonâŠâÂ
There is a soft compassion in your voice that almost instantly breaks Jihoon. It reminds him of how he had heard his mother speak to his father on so many occasions. Closing his eyes tightly, Jihoon tries to force himself not to let go, but when you turn towards him and lean against him, his resolve shatters. There were only a handful of times that Jihoon could even remember truly crying. He had been taught that this sort of emotion was weak and dangerous, but with you holding his hand, he didnât feel like anything could hurt him as he felt it all for the first time that day in waves.Â
7
Jihoon had been right; everything did change. There had been a few days of mourning and a moment to breathe before the air and ground had been ripped out from underneath you both. Suddenly your days were filled with wedding preparations and daily meetings with various members of Jihoonâs family as they helped walk you through not only expectations of your wedding but the coronation.Â
You had found yourself on more than one occasion wanting to find time to spend with Jihoon only to be whisked away without more than a dozen words spoken between the two of you. Even without the time you wanted, you could still feel the difference after the storm and after you had shared your feelings with Jihoon. He was different. While you could almost see the stress as it surrounded him like a blanket, you could also see the tenderness in his gaze as he looked at you. You could feel the same each time he would lift your hand and kiss the back of your knuckles before apologizing for once again being pulled away to a meeting, leaving you to deal with the wedding on your own.Â
âYouâve changed him.âÂ
There had been very few moments when you had spent an extended period of time alone with the queen, but today was one of them. The two of you watch as Jihoon once again excuses himself and with her words, your cheeks warm as they would be if you were standing too close to the fireplace. Pressing your lips together, you pick up the sample fabrics laid between the two of you when she smiles and reaches for your hand, taking your fingers into her own and squeezing them gently.Â
âI donât know how. And I know itâs been a difficult few months with us.âÂ
Hearing her voice break, you finally lift your head and meet Jihoonâs motherâs eyes with concern, sliding your hand into hers and offering her comfort. You watch as she smiles sadly and tilts her head, looking down at your hand as she adjusts the ring on your finger, remembering when Jihoonâs father had put it on her hand so many years ago.Â
âHeâs difficult, I know. We are difficult. Iâm not proud of howââ Shaking her head, she sniffs back her tears along with her words, choosing not to go on with them. âI hope that you can grow to love him. That you will learn to love one another. Heâs so special, Y/N. You are special; I feel it.âÂ
There was so much left unsaid. Not only from the queen but Jihoon. It seemed that almost everyone in the palace would skirt around things, keeping just enough information from you as if it would keep you pliant. Sighing, you tilt your head and smile at the woman watching her fingers adjust your ring with precision and care. âThank you, Madame. I havenât⊠Iâwell, if anything, I fear Iâve frustrated him more than anything. He just pushesââ Realizing that you are starting to complain about her son, your soon-to-be husband, and the soon-to-be king, you swallow hard and put a smile back on your face. âI will improve on my ability to adapt and obey my husband.âÂ
It wasnât much of a secretâyour discomfort and Jihoonâs seeming disinterest in you and your feelings. While Jihoonâs mother knew that most of what Jihoon had been doing had kept you healthy and alive, it still was a lot for you to handle. You had come from a completely different kingdom to a place where you were expected to follow a new set of rules, and you had your life turned upside down in the matter of days. Now just a few months later, it had happened again; you were being sent spiraling down the aisle.Â
âMm, and Iâm sure over time things will get easier... for the both of you.âÂ
You wished that the queen would say more. It was always like she wanted to tell you something, give more advice, and yet sheâd swallow it every single time before changing the subject back to the wedding or the coronation. You were left looking over the fabrics in your lap as she spoke softly enough for you to almost drown her out, leaving her voice a dull echo in the room as she planned much of it for you with Jieun.Â
Jihoon was growing tired of meetings already and he knew for the rest of his life this is what he had to look forward to. Sitting at the head of the table, he let the paper rest between his fingers as he pretended to look over it as much as he pretended to be listening to his cousin speak about the same topic for the last twenty minutes. None of this was important. He had more important thingsâin his opinionâto be doing, and you had looked so disappointed when he had once again been pulled away from you and the wedding planning.Â
It wasnât as if he had wanted this. He didnât want to be listening to budget adjustments and which kingdoms owed Aetherial Grove what. He knew most of them owed something, and to him it didnât matter. Aetherial Grove had more than enough to endure for centuries at this point, and he knew why. He dealt with the backlash of that deal almost every night, and every night that he wasnât getting his body torn apart, he was thrashing in his bed with nightmares.Â
âSo it might do us well to seek out some repayment from at least thirty percent of theseââÂ
âWhy? Where did you find that number?âÂ
It seemed that others in the room found it surprising that Jihoon had actually been following along, with how he had seemed to be staring off into the table. When he spoke, it caused several of the men in the room to shift uncomfortably and to straighten their backs, realizing their crown prince, the man they would call king in just a matter of two weeks, was listening to every single word despite him wanting to or not.Â
âIâfrom my research, JiâMonseigneur. It would benefit us. There is a royal wedding in less than a week and a coronation. IâIâm not certain that you understand how expensiveââ
âI understand that you all seem to think Iâm an idiot. You think that because I am new to this particular station and not yet fully seated that you can get by with whatever you wish; that wonât happen.â Pushing the papers from in front of him, Jihoon moves to stand, watching many of the others in the room do the same, but mostly Soonyoung and Wonwoo, who are ready to do what he commands. âLeave the other kingdoms alone. If the wedding and coronation are so expensive that you have to find ways to subsidise the budget, we can cut back on both. There is no need for all the fanfare. I doubt Madame Y/N would much disagree with me on this. Neither of us need some grand affairââÂ
âItâs for neither of you! Itâs for your kingdom, Monseigneur!â Having kept quiet for most of the meeting, Jihoonâs eldest uncle finally leans forward and raises his voice, causing the rest of the room to fall silent. âAs for what Madame Y/N wants, I donât care and I doubt many others do either. We appreciate her presence and she is a requirement, but she doesnât get a say in this. You barely get a say in this. You arenât king yet. We might have money to make this all work, but you need to learn the ins and outs of your kingdom before you go about throwing around your ego and making big decisions.âÂ
The room suddenly felt smaller; too small, as Jihoon stared at the older man, feeling his chest tightening. He knew there would be push and pull as he took his rightful place as king and knew there would be those who would think to know better than him; he just hadnât expected it to be those who had held his father in such high regard. âI care.âÂ
Jihoonâs voice is smaller than intended at first, causing his uncle to furrow his brows and lean forward to hear him better, but the second time that Jihoon speaks, he has the man and otherâs sitting back in their seats. âI care, what Y/N wants! You can have your wedding and your coronations, but you will not speak about her like that again. You wonât speak to me like that. This meeting is over, gentlemen. I have a fiancĂ©e to see to.âÂ
8
There were only 36 hours left before you would officially be Jihoonâs wife. Invitations had been sent out and guests were beginning to arrive from surrounding kingdoms, including your own. You had been thrilled when your mother and father had arrived and you had been able to see the pride in their eyes as you walked them through your new home.Â
It was easy to see that the benefit of your dowry was making a difference for them. You could see the difference mostly in your father. The stress that you had almost grown accustomed to seeing etched on his face was gone,replaced with happiness as he held your mother close and complimented every detail of the palace. You had felt the most sense of pride yourself when Jihoon had finally made time to meet your parents and put on his best face.Â
Over the time since his father had passed away, Jihoon had changed dramatically. You could see it; everyone could, and yet there was still something so distant about him that you were trying to figure out. He still wouldnât allow you the freedom you longed for and still kept you at a distance that left you cold and left your heart slowly splintering.Â
âOf course you are welcome to visit Y/N, and sheâperhaps she could visit you more often.âÂ
Jihoonâs words have your parentâs preening, your mother swooning over him and your father in awe, but to you, you can sense that heâs trying to get you out of the palace. You arenât even sure how you know, but you do, and itâs even more obvious to you when Jihoon meets your eyes and stumbles over his words before dismissing himself to get back to important matters.Â
âIâIâll see you later for dinâdinner.â The disappointment was evident in your eyes and Jihoon had to get away from it. You saw right through him and sometimes he was terrified that you saw more than he wanted. Did you know more than you let on? What if you knew about his curse? Would you hate him? Hate that you were marrying a murderer? Barely brushing his lips against your fingers, Jihoon blows out a panicked breath and slips out of the room. Meeting the eyes of a tall and broad man, he nods in his direction without asking who he is or why he is there. Instead, he moves quickly down the hall and out of sight, not hearing as Wonwoo announces the arrival of another guest.Â
âMadame. Monsieur Kim Mingyu, Duke of Leressair, has arrived.âÂ
You arenât sure why you hadnât expected Mingyu to accept your invitation, but seeing him for the first time in so many months has your heart in your throat. Quickly standing, you smooth your dress and listen as your father greets Mingyu, ushering him into the room towards the sofas.Â
âThank you.â Unable to keep his smile from growing too wide as he looks at you, Mingyu takes in a deep breath and lets it out a bit unsteadily. He almost hadnât accepted the invitation but the desire to see you at least one more time was too great and if it had to be like this, then so be it. âMadameââÂ
âStop it.â The playful smile on Mingyuâs lips as he uses your title makes your stomach tighten even as he reaches for your hand, bringing your knuckles to his lips and kissing them gently, managing to linger just a second too long. âDonât call me that, please.âÂ
âMm, fine. Itâs wonderful to see you, Y/N. You lookââ Mingyu lets out another breath, trying not to overstep but it had always been difficult when it came to you and he wasnât sure if your prince was in the room or not. âCongratulations on your wedding. Iâm glad you invited me. Care to, uhâwanna show me around?âÂ
It was a bold attempt at getting you alone so you could talk freely, but it worked. You knew that your parents trusted Mingyu and you had no reason not to, despite your own heart beating out of your chest as you looked at him now. Offering him your hand, you smile as Mingyu carefully guides it through his arm to rest on his forearm before letting you lead the way.Â
The moment that you and Mingyu step out of the room, you know you arenât alone. You can feel eyes behind you and hear the muffled steps drawing your eyes over your shoulder as you frown at Wonwoo. âIâWonwoo⊠Iâm fine. I am just showing him around the palace. I donât need a sitter.âÂ
âNot my intention, Madame. Simply following protocol... You would rather IââÂ
âI would rather you didnât follow me. Please? I want to talk to my friend. If Jihoon needs me, Iâm certain any one of you can find me. I am not difficult to find and Mingyu is very obvious.âÂ
It was clear that Wonwoo wasnât sure about following your wishes, his eyes moving over Mingyu as the taller man offers him a simple smile, almost feigning innocence, letting you speak for him. âIf thatâs what you want, Madame...â Wonwoo had no reason not to like Kim Mingyu, but he already felt uneasy with him here.Â
Sighing, clearly exasperated, you tug on Mingyuâs arm and lead him forward. Nodding at Wonwoo, you watch the steward stay where he is, though his eyes follow you until you are out of sight.Â
âIs it always like this? You arenât allowed to justâI donât know, exist?âÂ
Finally, someone understood how you felt without you having to sit down and explain it to them. Pouting up at Mingyu, you turn towards the gardens and sigh under your breath. So often since you had arrived in Aetherial Grove, you had felt like a prisoner in a fancy cell and this was one of the only times you felt like you had a semblance of freedom. âYou have no idea, Mingyu. IâI shouldnât speak poorly of my new family.âÂ
âItâs between us, Y/N, as always. Your secrets are my secrets. That hasnât changed, dove.âÂ
The pet name slipping from Mingyuâs lips not only has your cheeks burning but also a bit of shame and excitement rushing through you as you lead him further into the gardens away from the palace to enjoy the privacy. The name was nothing romantic or anything you should be ashamed of, but it could be misunderstood. It had come simply from your wish to be as free as a bird all of your life. You had sat in your window and Mingyu had caught you so many times staring off at the sky and daydreaming that the name had stuck when he had asked you if you were going to fly away like a dove.Â
âNo, perhaps not, but it feels like itâs been so long since Iâve seen you now. Things are complicated here.â Sliding your hand along Mingyuâs arm, your fingers catch his briefly, feeling him almost attempting to keep your hand in his before you find your hand back at your side. Looking down at the flowers, you sigh under your breath, feeling Mingyuâs eyes on you, forever patient as always, though his eyes move along your face and down your body, studying you. âIâm not allowed to leave the palace and thereâs only so much I am able to do inside. Itâs suffocating. IââÂ
Mingyu watches you laugh; though he can tell the laugh is without humor, itâs almost sad, causing him to furrow his brows and move closer to you. Wrapping his fingers around your wrist where your bracelet once sat every day while you lived in Thornwood, he gently taps at your pulse point and smiles at you, almost feeling your stress flowing through your body as you stand amongst the various flowers. âYou what? Seriously, tell me. Iâm not going to run to the prince and tell him. I donât even know what he looks like. Iâve only heard stories.âÂ
You had seen Jihoon look at Mingyu as he had walked in, but clearly they hadnât been introduced; youâd have to fix that at some point. Mingyu was so important to you, and Jihoon was and would remain important. There was no ending marriage for someone like you. This was your one and only chance, and it terrified you to look at the person who you thought you were going to be spending that chance with, seeing the kindness in his eyes that you so rarely got from Jihoon.Â
âI feel like a prisoner sometimes.â Grimacing, you whine and tug your wrist from Mingyu, almost hating that heâs touching you when you feel so gross about your own words. You shouldnât feel that way about the people who were giving you so much and giving your kingdom even more. They were saving your people and they hadnât truly done anything wrong to you. It was more about how you felt, about how your heart felt. âIâm awful.âÂ
âStop, no, you not. You arenât happy, Y/N. I could tell the moment I laid eyes on you.â Sliding his hands into yours, Mingyu turns you towards him and leans down to make you meet his eyes, watching you pout at him still. "Dove, you want me to steal you? Iâll do it. Iâll run away with you in a heartbeat.âÂ
It was a cute joke and a sweet dream. Laughing under your breath, you glance away from Mingyu even as your reaction makes his smile falter. He knew you wouldnât accept it. You were a child of responsibility and duty. This marriage was your duty and you wouldnât run away from it, no matter how much Mingyu tried to convince you otherwise. He wished with all of his heart that he had made you a ring instead of a bracelet and he wished even more right now that you were still wearing the bracelet.Â
âWell, the offer stands. Forever.â Lifting your hand slightly to look at your ring, Mingyu tries to judge it harshly but even he has to admit its fitting for your beauty. At least Jihoon had done that right, even if he wasnât keeping you happy. âI wishâitâs stupid of me, but I wish you were wearing your bracelet. Iâm sure the prince wonât allow it though.âÂ
The mention of your bracelet causes even the slightest smile on your lips to fade quickly as you think about the shards of gold sitting on your vanity. Lowering your eyes to the ground, you shake your head and lick your lips before trying to think of the best lie you can, not wanting to hurt Mingyu anymore than you have to. âIâno. Iâm sorry. It wouldnât be appropriate.âÂ
Shivering in the cold, Jihoon narrows his eyes as he watches you move deeper into the garden on another manâs arm. Jihoon trusted you. There wasnât really any reason for him to be concerned until this Kim Mingyu had shown up at the palace. The man hadnât even been on his radar until Wonwoo had found him and let him know that you and Mingyu had decided to walk alone. That on its own didnât have Jihoon where he was now, casually keeping his distance as he listened to you laugh softly at the manâs words and seemingly swoon over him; it was more how he was looking at you.Â
You seemed oblivious to it while not immune to Mingyuâs charm. That wasnât your fault; you were a woman whose betrothed had been pushing her away for months, and now a man you had known for years was showing you kindness and interest. The entire display was enough to make Jihoonâs stomach twist with something he wasnât used to feeling on his own without the beast provoking it: jealousy.Â
âNoâI, Y/N⊠I completely understand. It really wouldnât be. I just miss seeing it on your arm, thoughââ Laughing softly, Mingyu guides you by your wrist towards one of the concrete benches to sit down so he can do the same next to you, not realizing that Jihoon is watching so closely from the shadows. âItâs nothing compared to how pretty you are. Itâs really wasnât up to par with what I can make now. Iâve been practicing; in fact, I made you something. You know, as a wedding gift.âÂ
As always, Mingyu has your heart racing and your face on fire with his compliments. Shaking your head, you try to argue with him, but at the mention of a gift, you whine his name and draw your shoulders up towards your cheeks in an attempt to hide from his attention.Â
âNow, why are you doing that? Itâs nothing big, just a little thing, Dove. HereâŠâ
Clenching his fist at his side, Jihoon watches Mingyu take the small bag from his jacket as he feels the hair at the back of his neck stand up much like the hackles of an animal sensing danger. He didnât like this man. Mingyu didnât know boundaries. Where did he get off calling you Dove and giving you gifts days before you were getting married? You were Jihoon's... Taking a deep breath and letting it out under his breath, it comes out more of a growl than a breath as he watches you take the necklace from the pouch. You liked it. Your heart was racing. Jihoon could hear it from hereâthe beast could hear it. It pissed Jihoon off just as much as it pissed off the beast.Â
âOh my god, Mingyu. Itâs gorgeous. You really have gotten so good at this.â Tracing the golden bird in your palm, you frown slightly, feeling a pang of guilt over how much you like the necklace. You shouldnât accept it, and yet it feels like a piece of home to replace the bracelet that Jihoon had ruined and taken from you. Taking a deep breath, you hold it for a second before nodding and letting it out sharply, making up your mind. Youâd accept it and wear it. Jihoon didnât have to know. âWill you put it on for me?âÂ
You were too naive, and it made Jihoon want to be sick as Mingyu grinned, taking the necklace from you to do as you asked. Of course he would put the necklace on for you. It didnât mean the same thing to Mingyu as it did to you, but how could you know that? You were just a stupid little girl with her head in the clouds while Jihoon could read all the signs that Mingyu was throwing at you.Â
âSo beautiful and it looks perfect on you, Y/N.â Trailing his fingers along your neck even after heâs clasped the necklace, Mingyu leans his head around to look at you, watching you smile at his compliment. You were perfect and somehow you looked even more perfect with that necklace on. âPromise youâll try to wear it whenever you can? Remember me just a little bit, even when youâre a fancy queen?âÂ
Leaning back slightly as you laugh, you roll your eyes to Mingyuâs teasing, trying to tell him youâd try only to stop laughing or smiling at all when he presses his lips to your cheek closer to your jaw. âIâyes. Iâwe should go inside, Mingyu.âÂ
The kiss was enough to make Jihoon move, his hands now securely in his pockets as he put on a fake friendly face, moving through the garden as if searching for you. âOh, there you are, mon ange. Thatâs a pretty necklace.â Lifting his brow, Jihoon lets out a breath through his nose, meeting Mingyuâs eyes as he still speaks to you, watching you shift to sit on your own away from Mingyu. âWhoâs this?âÂ
You hadnât expected Jihoon to look for you. He never really had before and he had never, to your knowledge, called you anything other than your name or your title. Why was he calling you angel now? Putting your hand over the necklace in question, you feel your heart attempting to beat out of your chest as Mingyu smiles and half smirks up at Jihoon realizing who he is. âIâthank you. This is Kim Mingyu. HeâsââÂ
âMonseigneur, I presume? Kim Mingyu, Duke of Leressair. Iâm an old friendââÂ
âI see and you presume correctly, Monsieur.â Turning his attention from Mingyu, Jihoon presses his lips together before offering you his hand, waiting for you to take it. âWe should prepare for dinner. Allow our guests time to do the same. I have something I want to speak to you about anyway.âÂ
Jihoonâs eyes never leave you, even as you seem to struggle with your decision. Finally watching you put your hand in his, his lips pull up into something that resembles the half smirk that Mingyu had given him before he takes a step back, helping you to your feet. âWe will see you at dinner, Monsieur. Say goodbye, darling.âÂ
Between the feeling of Jihoonâs hand on yours and his intense gaze, you feel almost faint. This was different from what you were used to. You had never seen him act like this before, almost possessive over youâwas that what this was? A show of dominance? Glancing back over your shoulder as Jihoon guides you away from Mingyu, you furrow your brows and whisper your goodbye to your friend as he offers you a soft smile and a nod.Â
âIâll see you at dinner, Y/N.âÂ
Once inside the palace, the feeling of Jihoonâs hand around yours causes your anxiety to spike even higher. You find your mind racing as he leads you silently down the hall towards your rooms before finally stopping to push the door open and leading you inside and dropping your hand. Glancing around the room, you avoid his eyes and move towards one of your sofas when he finally speaks, stopping you in your tracks.Â
âDonât go anywhere with him alone again, and Iââ Struggling with what he knows he wants to say and what he has to say, Jihoon moves closer to you, carefully touching your arms, feeling you jump slightly. You were afraid of him. That was good and yet it still broke his heart. âYou canât wear this. Do you know how it would look?â Unable to see how your composure breaks, Jihoon carefully undoes your necklace, bringing the delicate chain into his hand along with the dove charm, leaving your neck bare.Â
Twice now he had taken home away from you. Tears slowly slide down your cheeks as you watch Jihoon move towards your vanity to lay down the necklace near the broken bracelet. You watch as he takes in a deep breath, picking up a piece of gold furrowing his brows at it, though you donât know what he is thinking; it just serves to anger you more. âCould you leave, please?âÂ
He deserved that. Your anger and the contempt in your voice. Gently putting the broken piece of the bracelet back with the others, Jihoon sighs and glances over his shoulder at you, seeing the tears drip from your face. Was this possibly worse than killing you? He hated both situations, but he also hated seeing that manâs hands on you and his lips against your skin. âNo, not yet. IââÂ
âWhy not? Thereâs nothing to say or do, Jihoon. I justâplease leave me alone.âÂ
The room seems too small as you close your eyes and wrap your arms around yourself, knowing that Jihoon is watching you so closely. You listen between your sobs to hear him leave the room but it never happens; instead, you open your eyes to find him sitting on the arm of your sofa, his eyes on his hands as he turns the ring on his index finger, slowly waiting for you to calm down.Â
âDo you hate me?âÂ
Another valid question for you to ask and yet again it broke Jihoonâs heart. You were leaving jagged pieces in his heart with almost every word and all Jihoon could do was shake his head and hope for a way to make this better. âOf course not. Y/N, Iâwe are getting married; how could I hate you?âÂ
âMarriage and your ability to care about someone donât go hand in hand, Jihoon. You could hate me and tolerate me as your wife.â Wiping your cheeks free of tears even as more fall, you move past him, feeling his eyes follow you. âAs long as I can stand by your side as a decent queen and provide an heir, Iâve met my purpose. I just need to keep my mouth shut and my legs open, right? Iâve been told it enough timââ
âJesus, fucking Christ, Y/N! Who told you that? It wasnât me.â Moving to his feet, Jihoon lifts his hands as you seem to recoil at his raised voice. He didnât want to scare you again, but you were spiraling and going off on a tangent once again. âI have never once saidââÂ
âYou told me to shut my mouth the night of our engagement party.âÂ
Jihoonâs brows furrow, his words dying in his mouth before heâs finished when you speak over him. He barely remembered that night at the party. He had made it out of the palace and off the grounds before shifting; he remembered more of what had happened in the forest and how the beast had killed every animal in its path. âWhat? I donâtââÂ
ââShut your mouth, Y/N and obey me.â You said that you put the ring on my finger and that I would obey you. Is that what you want from me now, Jihoon? Because thatâs what everyone else seems to think I should do.â Looking down at the ring on your finger, you furrow your brows at it, having grown to hate it. âProvide you children and obey you, day in and day out. Even if you yell at me and tell me to lock myself in my rooms for the rest of my fucking life.â Sniffing back tears hard, you defiantly meet Jihoonâs eyes even as you see the shock and pain behind them as you speak. âI hope I never give you a child.âÂ
While he wasnât going to say it to you now, Jihoon hoped the same. He was terrified that he would put something like himself inside of you. Not only would he curse another person by them being born like him, but heâd put that thing inside of you. But it wasnât the fact that he agreed with you that it hurt Jihoon, but that youâd say it out of anger. You hated him that much. âPerhaps you wonât. Time will tell, wonât it?â Running his fingers through his hair, Jihoon shakes his head and glances towards your window, knowing it was getting closer to dinner time. He wanted dinner over and done with as soon as possible. Everyone tucked away safely in their beds. âEverything I do, I do it for you.âÂ
Wrapping your arms around you at Jihoonâs words, you tilt your head, feeling a pang of resentment towards the man in front of you. âSo you say so very often with no explanation. Please⊠leave.â Your eyes follow Jihoon as he stands and moves towards you, stopping by your side to look at you, though you turn your head away, not wanting to look at him. You only feel his hand take yours and feel his lips brush over your knuckles as always before you head the door open and close to your room, leaving you alone.Â
9
"Oh, terribly so. Until she was 10 years old, I believe.âÂ
Hiding your face with your hands, you whine as your father tells yet another story to embarrass you hearing Jihoonâs mother coo at how adorable you are. Across the table from you, Mingyu grins at your reaction, using his napkin to wipe his lips as he furrows his brows and nods along.Â
âSheâs still afraid of storms, Your Majesty. She may have hid it well, but up to the day she left for thisâ" Choosing his words wisely, Mingyu nods at the Queen, shooting her a bright smile. âBeautiful kingdom, she would tremble and simply shut down at the first rumble of thunder. Iâm sure it hasnât changed. You would have to wrap her up in a blanket and keep her sheltered until it passed or sheâd suffer too much.âÂ
Mingyu was sharing too much. Shifting a bit uncomfortable in your chair, you reach for your wine once again when Jihoon takes it from you, taking a sip of his own and then offering it to you as he hums in appreciation.Â
âMm, Monsieur Mingyu is right. I found my darling Y/N during the most recent storm, afterââ Furrowing his brows, Jihoon clears his throat and chooses not to talk about his father, instead he smiles and shakes his head, looking over at you. âAnyway, she made it through just fine with someone simply by her side. Sheâs much stronger than some give her credit for.âÂ
You didnât need Jihoon to stick up for you. You couldnât shake the feeling of him trying just a little too hard, asserting his dominance a bit too much. By the end of the dinner, you find yourself feeling drained between his need to hover and Mingyuâs need to meet him at every level. At the beginning of the afternoon you hadnât noticed it, their preening, but it had become all too clear by dessert as you hoped and prayed for dinner to come to an end.Â
Jihoon wanted nothing more than to walk you to your room for the night. He had watched you stare at your cake, your fork slicing off thin bits that you never ate until most of it lay in a pile on your plate while others laughed and drank around the table out of celebration. They were all distracted; well, most of them. He had noticed Mingyu watching you as well. He knew that the other man had realized how distracted you were and even now, as the dinner was wrapping up, he was lingering.Â
âY/NâŠâÂ
âMon ange.âÂ
The two voices pull your attention from your destroyed dessert and up to where Jihoon stands to your right and Mingyu just a bit further to your left. When had everyone else left? Were you that distracted? Dropping your fork, you mutter your apologies, allowing the servant to take the plates from in front of you, meeting her worried look before you start to slide your chair back, feeling Jihoon ease it from you, making it easier to stand up.Â
âAre you alright? Iâperhaps we could take a walk?âÂ
Mingyu was being bold and right in front of Jihoon. You could feel the heat from Jihoonâs body as he steps closer to you, meeting the larger manâs eyes over your shoulder. Before he is able to speak, you remember what Jihoon said in your room, and you shake your head and offer Mingyu a sad, genuine smile. âIâm so tired. Rain check? I just want to go to bed.âÂ
âIâll get you to your room, Y/N.â
The tension between you and Jihoon was evident even as he guided you out of the dining hall and deeper into the palace with his hand on your lower back. He felt too warm, too close. You were still angry at him and you didnât want him to walk you anywhere.Â
âI can make it the rest of the way myself.âÂ
Rolling his eyes, Jihoon sighs your name under his breath, grabbing your arm at your elbow when you try to walk away from him. This wasnât the time to be frustrating him. It was too dark outside and though he could feel that he might not shift tonight, he was close. The beast was right under his skin, causing his emotions to be heightened. âI said Iâd get you to your room. So, please... stop acting like this. Are you just trying to get away from me so you can run back to your friend?â The moment the words leave Jihoonâs mouth, he feels regret wash over him, especially when he sees the look on your face. âShit, Iâno, wait. Iâm sorry, Y/N!âÂ
With Jihoon, he really did take one step forward and two steps back. With those words spoken aloud, he took five massive steps back and he might as well have punched you in the stomach. Tugging your arm free from his grip, feeling his fingers try to grip you tightly, possibly leaving a bruise, you find yourself not caring as you sniff back your tears and start walking quickly away from him as he tries to apologize. âWhy? Why are you sorry? Because you said it, or because you think Iââ Grimacing, unable to even say the words, you shake your head and throw up your hands out of anger.Â
Jihoon finds himself walking behind you, his fingers working through his hair out of nerves as he tries to keep up and think of how to fix this. âNo! WaitâI, yes! Iâm sorry because I said it! I didnât mean it!â Stopping quickly when he reaches your door to watch it be slammed in his face, Jihoon lets out a loud, frustrated breath as he leans his forehead against it and presses his palms next to his head. âI know you wouldnât! Please let me in and talk to me. Donâtâcome on! We are getting married in a day!âÂ
Resting your head back against the door, you feel fresh tears stream down your cheeks and along your neck as Jihoon knocks on your door, begging you to speak to him and to forgive him. You knew when you were getting married and you were beginning to wonder if you should take Mingyuâs proposal up and run away with him. As quickly as the thought passes through your mind, a wave of guilt rushes through you, pain hitting your chest and stomach and causing you to sob loud enough that Jihoonâs knocks stop. You wonder if he has left, but his soft voice a moment later tells you that he hasnât.Â
âY/N⊠I hate myself for this. Forâfor making you feel like this. Iâm a curse to everyone around me. D-do youââ Sliding down the door, Jihoon sits on the floor against it, knocking his head back against the wood before reaching up to rest his head in his hands. âIf you want to leave me, Iâd let you. I would tell them youâI donât know. Iâd make up something, if thatâs what you want.âÂ
Silence. You arenât even listening to him. Jihoon feels like a fool for even trying to speak to you. You clearly hate him more than anyone else in the world, but then that feels impossible because no one could hate him more than himself. Sitting in his own self-loathing, Jihoon pushes his thumb against his palm hard, wondering if he should give up when he hears the lock of your door turn and feels the surface behind him shift, leaving him sitting on his own as he looks up at you from the floor.Â
âY/NâŠâÂ
Taking a step back, you let Jihoon get to his feet, his hands quickly trying to wipe the dust from his pants so that he looks somewhat more presentable before he moves into the room once you let him.Â
âWe have a duty, Jihoon.âÂ
"No, I know thââÂ
âLet me speak.â No other woman had ever spoken to Jihoon like you did or made him feel this way. You commanded the space, even with tears drying on your cheeks and a look of heartbreak in your eyes. âI came here for Thornwood and Iâm not a coward. I said I would marry you and thatâs what I intend on doing, but things have to change.â
Change terrified Jihoon. Swallowing hard, he tilts his head, watching you appraise him and his reaction. He wanted to give into you so easily and give you everything you wanted, but was it that easy? The beast would kill you the first chance it got. âY/NâŠâÂ
âThings have to change, Jihoon! Iâm not your prisoner. Iâm not a doll that you can lock away in some room and play with when you see fit. Iâm going to be the queen.âÂ
You were right; he knew that. Grimacing even as he nodded, Jihoon watches your expression soften. He wasnât completely giving into this; there would still need to be some safe guards put up, but perhaps he could allow some changes for your happiness. âOkay, but we have to compromise. I still donât want you going out at night, ever.âÂ
It takes everything in you not to lash out at Jihoon; itâs only the look in his eyeâa genuine look of concern for youâthat makes you even consider that heâs not just trying to keep some power over you. âIâfine. I donât get it, but I wonât go outside after dark.âÂ
Relief washes over Jihoon and he nods along with your words, taking a step closer to you, happy when you donât instantly move away from him. âThere are things in the dark that you donât understand, Y/N. I donât want you hurt, or worse. So thatâs the only thing I ask for right now.âÂ
To you, it sounded like ghost stories and fairy tales once again getting the best of the imaginations of the residents of Aetherial Grove; you just hadnât expected it to be their prince who fell for them. You didnât expect those stories to make him pale and to look sick to his stomach as he reached for your hands, wanting you close. âIâokay. Theyâre just stories, Jihoon, but Iâll stay inside at night. I said I would. Stop worrying so much. We have enough to worry about besides ghost stories.âÂ
Ghosts? If only that were the worst of Jihoonâs troubles. He had never seen a ghost in his life. He didnât question their existence. Perhaps they did exist and wandered another realm, but in his world he had bigger things to worry about. Offering you a smile, Jihoon nods and lifts your hands bringing them to his lips kissing both of your hands and resting his lips against your left for a moment longer before taking a step back. âYouâre right, darling.âÂ
10
You had always been told that dream weddings were made for princesses. So why was it on your own wedding day that you didnât feel like it was your own wedding? You were in your dress, your flowers in your hand, as you stood next to your father in front of the large church doors, listening to the beautiful music, but it was as if you were watching someone else get married.Â
âReady, honey?âÂ
Had you said yes? You couldnât remember, but it didnât matter. You were putting on a smile and avoiding the eyes of everyone as you walked down the aisle, just attempting not to trip. One, two, three, four, five, sixâby the time you reached the front of the church, you had counted 79 flower petals that had been dropped by one of your youngest cousins. They were very pretty petals. What did petals lining a wedding aisle mean again? Luck? Fertility? Transformation? A bond between families?Â
âMy wife and I.âÂ
Your father was speaking and offering your hand to someone else. You were getting married. Lifting your eyes, you meet Jihoonâs feeling, and your heart starts to beat frantically as it all seems to set in for you. The air settles around you and his hands on yours ground you bringing you back to reality.Â
âYou okay?âÂ
What did he want you to say? You could barely find words to speak so instead you smile and nod, watching him do the same as the priest continues the ceremony. You find yourself transfixed on the man in front of you, every piece of hair in place, his handsome smile, and his beautiful brown eyes.Â
âYes, I do.âÂ
He does? What does heâ-Â
âMadame Y/N Y/L/N of Thornwood, do you take this man, Monseigneur Lee Jihoon, to be your lawfully wedded husband?â
The room had become deathly silent. You could hear a pin drop as they waited for your answer and all you could truly hear was your heart and unsteady breath as Jihoon kept his eyes on you. The words sit on the tip of your tongue until Jihoonâs fingers gently squeeze yours, giving you the confidence you need to continue and gaining a happy whispered cheer from the audience watching.Â
âYeâyes, I do.âÂ
Blowing out a breath, playfully. Jihoon smiles when you finally do speak, feeling the tension release from your fingers. You were nervous and that was making him even more nervous. You seemed like you were in another world until he finally brought you back and now that he had you and the priest was delivering the last of his lines, Jihoon felt like he could either throw up or like his chest could explode from being overwhelmed.Â
âI now pronounce you man and wife. Monseigneur, you may kiss your bride.âÂ
His bride. His. He had never kissed you before, no more than the back of your knuckles but that hadnât meant that he hadnât thought about it or dreamt of it. Swallowing hard, Jihoon nods and takes one hand from yours to cup your jaw gingerly as he leans forward, his lips resting mere centimeters from yours, letting you decide to do the rest.Â
Why had he stopped? Whining under your breath, feeling Jihoonâs breath against your lips, you furrow your brows and close the distance, pressing your lips against his for the first time hearing the audience burst into a loud cheer seeing the first kiss shared by a husband and wife. You had shared a kiss with Mingyu before; it had been small, just his lips brushing against yours before you had pulled away, but this was different. You could feel Jihoon smile against your lips. You could almost taste him before he pulled away, leaving you breathless and stunned at the alter next to him.Â
It shouldnât surprise you or Jihoon that the rest of the reception would be a whirlwind of well wishes and unsolicited advice. You find that once again your only saving grace is the man standing beside you, his hand linked with yours and his thumb rubbing small circles on the inside of your wrist as he carries most of the conversations.Â
âMm, no. We wonât be going anywhere. We have the coronation set for the middle of next week and there is so much to be done here. I will enjoy my bride at home. Iâm hoping to spend as much time with her as possible.âÂ
You find yourself wondering how much of Jihoonâs words are true. Would he spend extra time with you? What would tonight be like? The idea of your wedding night has your stomach in knots and Jihoon tugging you tighter to his side, feeling your fingers closing around his.Â
âIâmm, no, thank you. Weâre fine. Really, we wonât travel often. If Y/N wants to travelââÂ
Why wouldnât Jihoon travel? That had come up time and time again. He was ready to send you back home to visit your parents. You two would be going nowhere after your wedding and now he was offering to let you travel without him? Furrowing your brows, you look up at your husband finally meeting his eyes, making him laugh a bit awkwardly and excuse you both as he grabs two glasses of champagne, leading you towards one of the windows, letting you rest against the sill.Â
âThis is exhausting. Are you alright?âÂ
Gladly accepting the glass, you hum between sips before tilting your head and looking out over the crowd that was luckily getting smaller as the afternoon crept by. âFine. Ready to be alone. This is just overwhelming.âÂ
Nodding into his own glass, Jihoon lets his eyes move around the room before they land on Mingyu, who nods in acknowledgement before looking away. He was ready for everyone to leave as well, ready for them to go back to where they belongedâespecially Kim Mingyu. âItâll be done soon and you can head to bed.âÂ
Pausing mid-drink, you glance up at Jihoon before lowering your glass. "Oh, and should Iââ Taking a deep breath, you close your eyes, turning your head away, feeling awkward and uncertain about how to continue without sounding desperate. âShould I expect anyone to join me?âÂ
Jihoon had taken a drink and swallowed half of it when you finally got your words out. He wasnât sure what he had expected, but it wasnât that. He hadnât meant to react the way he had, but being caught off guard and feeling the champagne take a sudden wrong turn, Jihoon finds himself coughing as he tries to calm himself down and avoid your eyes and others as they look at him concerned. âIâm fine⊠Iââ Tilting his head and clearing his throat, Jihoon holds up his hand, keeping others from approaching him or you as he repeats that he doesnât need help. âIâm fine, I promise.âÂ
âWas my question that shocking?âÂ
Jihoon watches your lips quiver slightly, only for you to hide your emotions by taking a sip of the drink in your hand. âNoâI, yes. I wonât lie, yes, but also it shouldnât have been. Y/N, Iâm not meaning to upset you.âÂ
Shaking your head, you clear your throat, feeling your cheeks flair with warmth from embarrassment. You were such a fool for even considering that Jihoon would come to your room or want you like that even if you were his wife. âIâm not upset. Iâm tired. Iâm going to go ahead and call it an evening. Say goodbye to the guests, Jihoon.â Stepping away from him, you meet his eyes, feeling his fingers trail over yours. âAnd get a wonderful nightâs sleep.âÂ
Pinching the bridge of his nose between his fingers, Jihoon groans in frustration at you and mostly himself as the door closes behind you, leaving him alone with the guests in the dining hall at the wedding reception. He had once again messed up and was left to clean up the mess. It wasnât like he didnât want to see you or be with you, but tonight was going to be a bad night.Â
Some nights Jihoon couldnât tell when he was going to shift, and others like tonight he could feel it from a mile away. Every inch of his body felt like it was on fire and the rumbling in his ears had been loud from the moment he had gotten up. He had barely made it through the wedding on sheer will, but now you had left him to the lions, and one in particular looked overly amused.Â
Working his way through the remaining guests, bidding them a goodnight and explaining you had needed to go lay down with a headache, Jihoon felt his own headache growing with every single lie he told. It wasnât until Mingyu had given him one more smirk and sipped at his whiskey that Jihoon cracked. âSomething on your mind, Mingyu?âÂ
âOf course not, Monseigneur. Just awaiting my turn to give my well wishes to the beautiful couple before I retire for the night, butâoh, where is your bride, Monseigneur?âÂ
He was playing with fire and clearly drunk. Laughing under his breath, Jihoon nods and wipes his finger under his nose, moving closer to Mingyu. He could feel a subtle shift in the air, not realizing his eyes had already shifted in color from brown to gold. âWaiting for me in bed, like a good wife. Where she belongs.âÂ
Mingyuâs smile falters not only at Jihoonâs words but also at the change in his tone and the difference in Jihoonâs eye color. âYeah, that so? She didnât seem very happy earlier. So I figured you wouldnât be satisfying her on her wedding night. Or at least thatâs what her face was saying. I know her pretty well, you see.âÂ
Scoffing, Jihoon digs his nails into his palm, taking a step towards Mingyu, who doesnât budge. âDo you know her pretty well? How well? Careful with your next words...âÂ
He had no reason to be afraid of Jihoon, and yet the air around Jihoon was causing Mingyuâs hair to stand on end. He could feel his heart rate starting to rise as he realized that the only people left in the room beside himself and Jihoon were servants. âIâyeah, I knowââÂ
âMonseigneur! Itâs time for a night walk.âÂ
Time had gotten away from Soonyoung during the festivities. He hadnât realized how dark it had gotten until he had seen Jihoon backing the larger man against a wall and he knew that could only mean one thing: Jihoon was shifting. âApologies for taking away the monseigneur, but routines. Have a goodnight, Monsieur.âÂ
Left speechless, Mingyu is only able to take a full breath once Jihoon is ushered away from him and out the doors. âWhat the fuckââ His heart was slowly starting to calm down and the sense of danger seemed to dissipate the longer that he was away from Jihoon. There was something wrong with everything that had just happened. He was twice the size of Jihoon in most ways and yet the man had him almost trembling for a moment and quickly sobering up. Now the prince was going for a night walk? Where? You werenât allowed to go out at night. That was one of the things you had told Mingyu. Now he was even more curious as to why.Â
Guiding Jihoon towards the gates, Soonyoung grimaces, hearing the sounds of flesh starting to rip. This was closer than he wanted to be to a shift. It was dangerous and he had scars that he already bore from Jihoon and close calls.Â
âGet away from me!âÂ
Trembling from the pain and fear of shifting, Jihoon growls out the words, glancing back at Soonyoung as he slams the gates shut in front of him, sealing him out for the night. The painful groaning roar that escapes Jihoon next almost breaks Soonyoungâs heart as he turns on his heels and runs back towards the palace, not seeing Mingyu lingering in the shadows near the gates watching Jihoon stumble and fall as he shifts into the beast.Â
âFuckââ There arenât words to explain what Mingyu feels or the terror for you that runs through him as he watches the bearâs claws dig into the dirt as it runs for the forest snarling. There was no way he was going to let you stay here with that thing. Heâd kill it before heâd let it hurt you. Without much thought, Mingyu heads back towards the palace and to his room to grab his knife before sneaking back out towards the forest in search of Jihoon, determined that only one of them would come back for you in the morning.Â
11
The night had been too long and filled with strange and horrible dreams as you tossed and turned in your bed. You had hoped and prayed that Jihoon had been lying to you and that he would show up at your door, but instead you found yourself on your wedding night alone. You had been half tempted to go find Mingyu, but after sending Jieun to find him, she only found his room empty, confusing you more.Â
You woke the next morning to terrified and frantic yelling that made your stomach twist instantly with nausea before your feet ever hit the floor. What was wrong? Why would anyone be that upset after the day of your wedding?Â
Not caring about putting on more than a robe, you run through the halls and towards the commotion only to stop when Wonwoo wraps his arms around your waist, urging for you to wait. âNo! Whatâs wrong? Let me go!â Tugging free from his grasp, you manage to move through the wall of people only to fall to your knees at the sight in front of you.Â
When you hear the scream, you arenât aware that itâs coming from you until your mother is holding you to her chest and rocking you back and forth, trying to calm you down. The sound is so gut wrenching and devastating that you canât believe that you are making it, but the sight of Mingyu bloody and clinging for life in front of you was enough to make you learn that you could make such a sound.Â
âHeâs alive, butâbarely. Jihoon found him in the forest this morning and brought him back. If it wasnât for him...âÂ
Blinking through your tears, you search for Jihoon, who mutters something you canât hear to Soonyoung before he disappears from your sight down the hall once again, leaving you essentially alone. You are left clinging to your mother as you watch the servants move Mingyu into another room where doctors begin their work to save your friend.Â
Your sense of time gets lost as you sit outside of the room listening to the hushed voices of the doctors and the clanking of their tools. Itâs only when someone kneels in front of you, putting a plate of food on your lap, that you seem to focus on the face in front of you, realizing that itâs Jihoon. Glancing down at the plate, you grimace and look away from it, feeling Jihoonâs palm against your cheek, turning your head back towards him.Â
âYou have to eat. Youâve been sitting here all day. Itâs doing him no good.â Picking up the fork from the plate, Jihoon cuts into a piece of meat, lifting it for you and watching you furrow your brows as he tries to feed you. âEat, please? How is not eating going to help the doctors save him?âÂ
The smell of the meat wasnât appetizing. Nothing about the food in front of you made you want to eat it, but it was more Jihoon urging you to take a bite that had you leaning forward and accepting it. Chewing slowly, you lean your head back against the wall as he sighs, moving to sit in front of you, crossing his legs, and putting the plate in his own lap so he can gather more of the food waiting for you to finish the first bite.Â
âY/NââÂ
âWhere did you find him? Why were you outside, Jihoon?âÂ
Closing his eyes, Jihoon rests the fork on the plate and takes a deep breath to your questions as you cut him off before he can speak again. There was the truth and then there was what he and Soonyoung had come up with. Jihoon wasnât sure which he was ready to tell you or if he was ready to tell you anything.Â
He could remember Mingyu trying to attack himâthe beastâin the forest. He could still see the anger on the manâs face as he tried to do anything with the useless knife in his hand, but like many others before him, Mingyu had found himself powerless against the beast. The thought of it made Jihoon feel sick to his stomach as he smelled the copper in the air even now as the doctors worked to repair what he had done to Mingyu. He wasnât sure how he hadnât killed him. Maybe it was seeing your face and the pain in it when he had taken the necklace from your neck, but he had managed to run away from Mingyu and then find him barely breathing once he was human again.Â
âPlease donât do this to me.âÂ
Jihoon heard your tears before he saw them. He heard the desperation and despair in your voice as you sobbed, drawing his eyes back up to you. It had broken his heart before to see you upset but now you were his wife. It was his duty more than ever to take care of you and he was already fucking it up. âIâhe was attacked by a monââÂ
âThe monseigneur was out for a morning walk and heard him.âÂ
Gritting his teeth to Wonwooâs voice, Jihoon lowers his head again and nods along with the story that he and Soonyoung had come up with. Of course others in the palace would know the story by now, and the steward would want to protect himâespecially from himself. Jihoon wants to explain it all to you and make you understand, but the look on Wonwooâs face makes him stay silent as you stare up at the tall man.Â
âDo we know what attacked him?â Jihoon had started to say something. You could tell that he was keeping something else from you, that perhaps he had started to open up and then he was once again silenced. This had happened beforeâthe same song and dance, but this was different for you. Your best friend was laying torn apart on a table fighting for his life and you werenât just going to accept it and smile. âJihoon saidââ
âThe monseigneur is tired, madame. You both are. You arenât eating properly and the monseigneur is increasingly busy as the coronation approaches.âÂ
You were starting to hate Wonwoo. He kept secrets worse than Jihoon in some ways. He made you realize that Jihoon was as much, if not more, of a prisoner in this palace than you were. Shaking your head, you turn it away from both Wonwoo and Jihoon listening for the sounds of the doctors as they continue to work. âI want to be alone.âÂ
âY/N, I can sit with you. I donât haveââÂ
âVery well, madame. Monseigneur, you have a busy day. If you donât mind to come with me?âÂ
Biting at his cheek, Jihoon lets his eyes move over your pretty face as fresh tears run down your cheeks untouched. He wanted to fix this, to make you feel better and yet he was once again being pulled away from you. âFine⊠Here, please eat a bit more.â Putting the plate next to your leg, Jihoon watches your eyes move to it for a few seconds before you look away again, ignoring what he said. âIâll check in when I can, darling.âÂ
You do your best to stay stoic even as the tears run down your face, but when Jihoonâs lips press to the side of your head, you canât help how your body shakes with grief. You wanted him to stay with you and keep his vows to love and protect you.Â
Keeping his eyes on you until itâs impossible to do so, Jihoon crosses his arms and scowls at the ground in front of him, knowing Wonwoo is just a few steps behind him. âThis better be important. I should be back there with her.âÂ
âWith all due respect, monseigneur Iâm not sure being around madame Y/N is in your best interest when you are in the headspace you are currently in. You might make mistakes and put yourself or the kingdom at risk.âÂ
Jihoon felt like the air had been forcefully removed from his lungs as he came to a stop in the hallway. There wasnât anything pressing to take care of; Wonwoo was just trying to keep him quiet. It made sense. He had heard some of what Jihoon had started to tell you, but it didnât give him the right to dictate what he said or did.Â
Even as Jihoon stood there seething, he knew that he was lying to himself. Of course Wonwoo could tell him what to do and how to do it. His allegiance was to the king and to the kingdom. Jihoon wasnât yet king. Wonwoo was doing what he thought would protect the kingdom, and even Jihoon knew the man was right. If you knew everything about Jihoon, there was no way you would have married him. There was no way that youâd be his queen and there was no way heâd ever even have a chance of having an heir with you.Â
âI know you are upset with me, Jihoon. Your father gave me very specific instructions before he passed away. Iâm attempting to follow them to the letter. I want you to succeed. Stop attempting to self-sabotage yourself.â Watching Jihoonâs shoulders relax, Wonwoo lets out a breath and takes a step closer to the prince, tilting his head. âSheâll learn everything in time. It doesnât have to be now and certainly not while he is on an operating table. Think about how she would react learning thatââÂ
âI get it. I was being weak. Thank you for stopping me, Wonwoo.âÂ
He was right; Jihoon knew it. Youâd hate him. You might even try to do exactly what Mingyu had and he wouldnât even blame you.Â
12
Thorns dug into your feet. Bloody footprints marked every step you made as you ran through the dark forest away from the sounds of heavy breathing and snarls. You were terrified. Every beat of your heart could be felt in your throat as you tried to take in breaths to keep your energy up just enough to stay in front of whatever was chasing you.Â
It didnât seem to matter how hard you ran or what way you turned; you could almost feel the hot breath of it on your neck. Tears streamed down your face as you heard it growl your name; your eyes shut tightly as you begged for your life, only for your body to jerk awake as you hear your name once again.Â
âY/N⊠dear?âÂ
You werenât in the forest and there was nothing chasing you. You were inside the palace but you had been moved from where you last remembered being. Shifting on the sofa, you whine, feeling your motherâs hand brush over your head as you try to sit up, feeling how stiff your body has become from sitting on the floor and sleeping on something that isnât your bed.Â
âOh, darling. You look so weak. Couldnât I take you to your bed?âÂ
Recoiling from her touch, you look around the room and towards the door, seeing that you werenât moved far. The room where the doctors had been working on Mingyu was just across the hall. âNo. MingyuâŠâÂ
Brushing her fingers over your head, your mother nods and purses her lips when you refuse to leave. She knew you would. You were always stubborn and strong-willed. She wondered if your new husband had met this side of you and if he had known this side of you if he would have accepted the cost of your dowry. No doubt you were beautiful and lovely in many ways, but your stubbornness could cause issues in a marriage that your mother worried about. âMingyu is out of surgery, Y/N. About an hour ago. Heâs in his room, resting.âÂ
He had made it. Pushing her hand away, you sit up fully and try to slide from your mother, only to feel her hand wrap around your arm to stop you. âMother, please. I want to go see him. I need to see him for myself.âÂ
âAnd I understand that, Y/N, but, IâI just, consider how this looks? I know that you two were close back home. Perhaps too close. Donât make your husband regret his hospitality.âÂ
Shrugging her hand from your arm, you stand, giving her a look of contempt as she returns the look with more concern underlying. âI am checking on my friend. If Jihoon wants to be upset about that, so be it.âÂ
It was late afternoon now. You could feel the weight of the day resting on your shoulders as you made your way through the palace and towards Mingyuâs room. You knew your mother wasnât wrong, but you hadnât been lying. To you, there was nothing about what you were doing that was wrong. You had sat outside of the room where he had been in surgery most of the day until someone had moved you, so why would it be a shock to anyone that you would want to see him once he was out?Â
Carefully pushing open his door, you glance around the dimly lit room as a frown quickly settles on your lips when you see Mingyu in his bed with the covers tucked under his arms. Bandages cover his chest and one of his shoulders, blood seeping through even as he sleeps with his brows furrowed so deeply. It broke you to see the man you knew to be so strong, so completely broken in front of you.Â
You donât worry about shutting the door all the way; instead, you move towards the bed and take Mingyuâs hand in yours, being careful not to jostle him in any way as new tears gather in your eyes and quickly fall on your cheeks. âIâm so sorry. I should have never asked you to come. Youâd be safe and back home. Iââ The words get caught in your throat on a sob as Mingyuâs nose wrinkles and he sighs in his sleep, giving you the first real sign that he is possibly going to be okay.Â
Jihoon had finally found time to look for you again. He had found you sleeping against the wall after forcing himself to participate in a few meetings and decided to move you to the sofa, but now you werenât there. He knew that Mingyuâs surgery had gone well; he was projected to recover to some degree, resembling being completely healed in a few months. Jihoon had been told that it was even possible that he would be well enough to travel in a week if his body took over healing as it should.Â
Now Jihoon found himself in search of you, already knowing where you would be. He couldnât blame you for wanting to see Mingyu. Even with as much as it made his chest feel heavy, he knew he would let you stay with him for as long as you wanted if that made you happy. Jihoon had done enough to disappoint you and to ruin your life in ways that you didnât even understand yet.Â
Hearing your sobs, Jihoon pauses outside of Mingyuâs door and looks down at the floor, watching the light shift on the floor in front of him through the cracked door. He hated that he was getting used to the sound of you crying. That wasnât something anyone should grow accustomed to.Â
âI hate this so much. Why were you even outside? You are so stupid, Mingyu.â You didnât want to blame Mingyu or Jihoon for this. You wanted to blame whatever it was that attacked Mingyu and you wanted to blame yourself. âIâm so stupid.âÂ
"No, you arenât.âÂ
You knew that Mingyu hadnât spoken. The most he had done was sigh and shift some in his sleep. Furrowing your brows, you wipe your cheeks and turn towards the door, watching as Jihoon moves further into the room with a frown on his face. Perhaps your mother had been right. You shouldnât have visited Mingyu; it had upset Jihoon. Whispering his name, you slide your hand from Mingyuâs and sniff back your tears, uncertain what to do as Jihoon gets closer, his eyes moving to the bed and over Mingyu before they move back to you.Â
âIâm not here to rush you or make you leave, Y/N. I justâI was coming to check on you. You werenât where I left you.âÂ
Letting out the breath you hadnât realized you were even holding, you nod and settle back by Mingyuâs side, sliding your hand back into his as Jihoon wanders in the room near you. He had been the one to move you to the couch. You werenât sure how that hadnât dawned on you earlier. It makes sense. He had tried to feed you earlier; of course heâd want you somewhere at least a bit more comfortable. âIâm sorry, Jihoon.âÂ
âYou donât owe me anything. I wish youâd eat and rest, of course, but I wonât force it.â Quickly meeting your eyes before he moves to the window to look out over the courtyard as the sun starts to set, Jihoon takes a slow, deep breath and lets it out. âIfâif youâd let me, I will get you something and bring it here even. Or if you will finally lay down, Iâll bring it to your room, or have it brought there so you donât even have to see me.â Glancing over his shoulder at you, Jihoon sees Mingyu and the blood that is starting to stain the sheets draped over him and itâs a reminder that he did that. Heâs the one who hurt your best friend. âIâIâm sorry this happened.âÂ
The way that Jihoon spoke made you feel like the tide was rising and that time was against him and you. It was as if you didnât say something or save him that you might have to watch him drown as he swam out too far all while you watched from the shore. âItâs not your fault. You brought him back. You saved himââÂ
âY/N!âÂ
Sitting up straight, when Jihoon raises his voice, panic lacing it, you look from him to Mingyu as he winces in his sleep, causing you and Jihoon to pause until he settles once again.Â
âI didnâtââm sorry, fuck. IâI should just go.âÂ
The water was rising and you had a choice to make. You whine softly, closing your fingers tighter around Mingyu's. As you watch Jihoon walk towards the door, you suddenly stand up, dropping Mingyuâs hand and reaching for Jihoon's instead. Barely catching his fingers with yours, you once again whine Jihoonâs name. Coming to a stop, his head dropping as you take a step closer and sliding your hand fully into his.Â
âIâll eat in my room, but only if you join me.â You can see the apprehension in Jihoonâs eyes and how he glances towards the window, seeing how dark itâs gotten. âPlease, Jihoon.â Wincing at your pleading, he meets your eyes and nods.Â
âOkay.â Jihoon found it difficult to tell you no after disappointing you so often and seeing that heartbroken look in your eyes. The darkness terrified him, but there was no way to tell you that he was afraid to spend any time with you while the moon was in the sky. If he told you that heâd have to explain why, and then he would have to explain why Mingyu was laying in this bed still unconscious, so Jihoon didnât tell you no. Instead, he let you lull him and the beast with your soft smile as he gave into his temptation and brushed his fingers over your cheek, feeling your warm skin under his touch. âIâll be there soon.âÂ
You knew exactly why you had doubts about Jihoon keeping his promise to join you for dinner in your room, but as you sat at your window watching the moon rise, you tried not to let that doubt get the best of you. You were doing your very best not to let your mind wander back to Mingyu laying alone in his room covered in bandages and instead you did something you hadnât done in a long timeâyou prayed.Â
You werenât even sure who you were praying to. There were many gods, goddesses, and deities in general that people believed in, but with your silent prayer for Mingyuâs recovery and Jihoonâs strength going forward, you send your words to whomever might be listening. You pray for yourself. Your own strength and ability to do what must be done as a wife and queenâthat you might be worthy of Jihoon.Â
âAre you sure?âÂ
Not dignifying Soonyoungâs question with an response, Jihoon shakes his head and gives one look to your door before meeting his butlerâs eyes. He knew why Soonyoung was concerned. He wasnât the only one sharing those concerns. Junhui had his own reservations when he was asked to prepare the late dinner. Wonwoo had shared gentle reminders of earlier conversations and his mother had simply given her blessing, hoping that the night might be fruitful.Â
Fruitful. Jihoon knew what his mother meant, but how could she even be thinking of something like that right now? He wasnât trying to bed you. That was the farthest thing from his mind at the moment. In fact, that was the farthest thing from his mind in general. It wasnât that he didnât see you in that manner. Heâd be a fool to look at you and not lust after you. You were divine in his eyes and now you were his wife. It made it even harder not to give into lingering glances but today you were dealing with the stress of everything that had happened with Mingyu. Jihoon was going to your room to comfort you and to eat. Nothing more.Â
The hushed voices and soft knock at your door bring you out of your whispered prayers and right back to the present. Jihoon had kept his promise. Why did that terrify you almost as much as him breaking it? Moving to your feet, you swallow hard, feeling your breath getting caught in your throat before clearing it so that you can finally speak, though it sounds strained. âCoâcome in.âÂ
You had looked exactly the same before he had left you to get dinner ready, and yet you were taking Jihoonâs breath away as he stepped out of Soonyoungâs way, letting him push the tray into the room. Jihoon knew he was staring but at least your attention was taken up as you rushed forward, cooing over Soonyoung and the dinner. God, you really were too good for Jihoon. How he ever got lucky enough for you to end up in Aetherial Grove was a miracle. The idea of it made his stomach twist with anxiety even as butterflies overwhelmed him. He was so scared that he might hurt you in a way he wouldnât be able to fix.Â
âThis looks delicious. Itâs too much.â Sighing, you whine under your breath and reach for the tray as Soonyoung sighs at you, moving your hand away from it. âI canââÂ
âMadameâŠâÂ
âStop calling me that. You call him Jihoon. Do the same for me; call me by my name, please.âÂ
Lifting his eyes to Jihoon, Soonyoung watches the prince finally move into the room and towards the table as he places the dishes on it for you both to share.Â
âIf thatâs what she wants, Iâm okay with it, Soonyoung. We can handle the rest of this. Go rest.âÂ
The apprehension in Soonyoungâs eyes puzzles you at first. You wonder if he isnât sure to take what Jihoon is saying seriously or if he isnât sure if he wants to leave dinner alone without a servant present, but then the man puts on a dazzling smile and you canât seem to figure out which one it was. You find yourself instead smiling back at him as he bows at the waist and hums softly, ready to excuse himself.Â
âAlright. If either of you needs me or anyone else, you know how to get in touch. Goodnight, Y/N. Jihoon.âÂ
Nodding along with his words, Jihoon doesnât pay anymore attention to Soonyoung as he leaves the room. His eyes are on you as you stand next to the table and he realizes this is his first dinner alone with you. If the circumstances were different, it might seem intimate or romantic, but tonight Jihoon pushes those thoughts aside and offers you a soft smile before moving to pull out your chair, letting you sit down first. âIâm happy that you decided to eat, Y/N and IâIâm glad you wanted me here.âÂ
Finding him to be forever the enigma, you smile along with Jihoonâs words, feeling your cheeks heating up. âIâm just glad you accepted. I honestly⊠Well, I just donât think I want to be alone right now. Iâd rather be with you.âÂ
Jihoon had been ready to move the last of the plates to the table when you had spoken, but he hadnât been ready for your words. Letting out a breath, he smiles with his back turned to you, putting the plate back down on the tray to steady himself before trying again and this time moving it with ease to the middle of the table, still avoiding your eyes directly. âThen IâIâll stay with you. However long you need me to tonight.âÂ
Two courses into the impromptu dinner, you pout into your wine glass as Jihoon leans back in his chair with his own wine glass resting on his fingers. Itâs impossible for you not to admit to yourself that you have been struck with at least a bit of luck when it comes to your marriage. It might not be perfect, but you had seen worse pairings in arranged marriages before. Beautiful women paired with men their fatherâs age who expected them to be in bed ready for them every night. Handsome men who were stuck with wives who would sneak off with the stable boy not even after a year of marriage and yet you could look at Lee Jihoon for the rest of your life.Â
âWhy are you looking at me like that? Do I haveâdid I get something on my face?â Shifting in his chair, Jihoon lifts his free hand to rub at his lips, causing you to smile into a laugh that he finds infectious. âWhat? No, why are you laughing at me? Mon angeâŠâÂ
When had he started calling you that? Placing your fingers against your lips, you smile against them and turn your face away from Jihoon, trying to hide how shy he makes you feel. âJihoonâŠâÂ
You were driving him crazy. No other woman had ever made Jihoon feel like this. Perhaps he could chalk it up to never getting the chance to know them, but even that didnât feel like the answer. It all felt like it was leading up to you. You were made to be his. Some sort of cruel destiny where he might truly meet the love of his life and never fully get to love her the way he wanted to. âWhat is it?âÂ
This was insane; clearly you were insane or perhaps you had drank too much wine if the tension in the room had gotten so thick that you were once again looking at Jihoon with desire on your mind. So much had happened in just two days and it would be so selfish of you to attempt to act on your feelings while your best friend lay recovering in a room across the palaceâand yet you find yourself staring at Jihoon, wondering if his promise was true. âIâm not laughing at you, I promise. I justâyou are so handsome. It almost breaks my heart.âÂ
Run away. You should run away and never look back. Jihoonâs brain is screaming at him as he watches you from across the table, your eyes fixed on him in a way heâs never seen before. You didnât know what you were saying. You were drinking and lost in the momentâor you were simply a woman in a room with her husband after her wedding.Â
Letting out a deep breath at your compliment, Jihoonâs lips pull up slightly in a smile before he shakes his head. He wasnât disagreeing with you, but he knew that there was a deeply ugly part of him that you had seen on more than one occasion and you had yet to meet it fully. He prayed you never would. If he had to confine himself to a cell, he would rather that be his life than you ever suffer that side of him.Â
âI never want to break your heart, though I fear I have with my selfishness on many occasions already.âÂ
âItâs not important, JihoââÂ
âIt is, Y/N. Iâm sorry for my behavior. Iâm incredibly lucky to have such a beautiful wife, and not only that, but a beautiful, caring, and understanding wife who wears her heart on her sleeve. You are stunning inside and out, darling.âÂ
Once again looking away from Jihoon, you look up at the ceiling, trying to keep the tears gathering on your eyes from falling. He wasnât wrong about some of the things he had said. He had broken your heart many times already, but his words were doing a very good job at patching some of those cracks.Â
The moment the first tear slips down your cheek, Jihoon whispers your name and slides from his chair so he can move around the table to kneel on one knee in front of your chair. âI didnât mean to upset you. Iâm so bad at thisâat relationships. Iâm sorryââÂ
You had been kissed twice in your life. Once by Mingyu and then by Jihoon on your wedding day. Out of those two kisses, your wedding kiss had taken your breath away and made you realize that the one you and Mingyu shared had been between kids trying to figure out their way in the world. Your third kiss almost made you forget that you had ever kissed anyone besides Jihoon ever. You knew it was bold of you to kiss him and not let him have that opportunity, but between Jihoonâs words and having him in front of you, the moment had taken you over.Â
Wrapping his fingers around your wrist as you rest your hand against his cheek, Jihoon furrows his brows tightly. He hadnât expected you to kiss him, but he wasnât going to pull away or push you away. At first he wasnât sure what to do except return the kiss lightly, but then you sighed so softly and Jihoonâs mind almost exploded, sending a shiver through his body and right to his stomach, causing it to tighten as lust rushes through him.Â
He knew that you didnât know what you were doing to him. There was a chance that you didnât know what you were doing at all. You were merely following your instincts, and there was no way that Jihoon was going to tell you they were wrong. He was fighting with himself to deepen the kiss, to let his teeth nip at your lips, to let his tongue taste your skin. You were set in front of him like a pure white rose and Jihoon felt like he needed to protect you and ruin you at the same time. âShitââ Muttering against your lips, Jihoon tightens his grip on your wrist when you are the one who nips at his lips, sending another wave of lust through him. âWait. Y/NâŠâÂ
You didnât want to wait. This was what was supposed to happen on your wedding night. You had waited for Jihoon all night long until your body gave out and you had finally fallen asleep. Now you had him in front of you, your lips on his and he was telling you to wait? Whining on his lips, you grip at Jihoonâs shirt with your free hand, hearing him groan quietly, a sound that has you wanting to close your thighs tighter for any sense of release. âNo, Jihoon. Please? Why?âÂ
Reaching for the arm of your chair, Jihoon misses the first time landing on your leg through your dress, sending panic through him when you smile against his lips. This was too much; he was barely holding himself back and now you were begging him. Tightening his fingers around the wooden arm of the chair, Jihoon groans again, tilting his head as he finally takes over the kiss, feeling your lips part so he can brush his tongue against yours.Â
It felt like you were getting what you wanted. You had never kissed anyone like this before. You could taste Jihoon as his tongue glided along yours, his hand sliding from your wrist so he could cup your face, holding you in place. There was a familiar feeling between your thighs that you had only spoken to your married cousins and mother about. You werenât completely naive. You knew what it felt like to be aroused, but you had never been this aroused in your entire life. You knew that if Jihoon reached between your legs, he would find you dripping from just his kiss.Â
Groaning into the kiss, Jihoonâs hands shake slightly as he tries to keep himself in check. It would be so easy to pick you up and lay you on the ground under him. He could push your dress up and find what was hisâpushing the thought from his head, Jihoon furrows his brows, slowly breaking the kiss, leaving gentle kisses on your cheeks. He was painfully hard in his pants but it wasnât something that he would subject you toâhis sweet, beautiful bride.Â
âWhaâno. Jihoon?â Out of breath, you pout even as Jihoon presses his lips softly against your pout before leaning back on his knees to catch his own breath. It was clear he was done kissing you. Had you done something wrong? Did you not kiss well enough? Was it too obvious that you didnât have as much experience? âWhat did I do wrong?âÂ
Closing his eyes to your question, Jihoon curses himself for letting the kiss go as far as it did. He wanted to give you what you so clearly wanted, but he also didnât want you to hate him. Jihoon was terrified of what he might do to you if he let himself get in bed with you. He could already feel the hair standing up on the back of his neck, the beast curious with his current mood. The more awake the beast got, the more aggressive Jihoon was, and what if he couldnât stop himself? The thought scared him more than you being a bit upset about not getting what you wanted. âNothing, mon ange. Youâre perfect. We have the rest of our lives; no need to rush.âÂ
Rush? Who was rushing what? You wouldnât be fertile for the rest of your life. Jihoon knew that as well as you did. It wasnât the main thing on your mind but the idea of not providing a royal heir loomed over your head like a waiting guillotine, knowing that the entire kingdom would be watching and waiting. âOh, sure, butââÂ
âWe should get you to bed. Itâs been a dreadfully long day for you.â Jihoon could almost see the gears turning in your head. He was afraid of what you were thinking about so he didnât ask; instead, he moved to his feet and offered you his hand to lead you to your bedroom door. âWill you be okay?âÂ
What if you said no? Jihoon had promised to stay with you as long as you wanted. Furrowing your brows, you lift your fingers to your tingling lips, feeling confused by his actions and words after he had kissed you the way he had. âI suppose, butââÂ
âThen Iâll leave you to sleep, darling.â Brushing his lips against the corner of your lips, Jihoon hums softly against your skin, squeezing your hand gently before letting go of you completely and turning away. âGoodnight.âÂ
Your eyes burn at Jihoonâs back the entire walk to your door. He knew you were upset. He had made a promise and in his own way he had broken it. Sighing as he leans against the door having a barrier between you and him, Jihoon closes his eyes and furrows his brow, feeling not only his cock throbbing in his pants but the rumble of the beast laughing at him inside of his head.Â
13
âIâm fine, Y/N... Stop fretting over me. Seriously! I can lift a spoon.âÂ
It had been almost a week since Mingyu had been attacked in the forest. You had spent hours at a time every single day aiding in his recovery, watching him get stronger. Now you couldnât stop the smile that sat on your lips as Mingyu scoffed at you, lifting his own spoon up to his lips as you sat on the end of his bed watching him eat. âYou look so much better. Your color has returned and I thought Iâd never see you smile again, Mingyu. IâIâm so sorry this happened.âÂ
Swallowing the bite of soup in his mouth, Mingyu furrows his brows and shakes his head at your words. You had said something similar, at least a dozen times every day over the week. It wasnât your fault. He knew that much. He couldnât remember all the details of his attack, but he knew that you hadnât been there and you werenât even remotely connected to it. âI swear to god, Y/N, if you donât stop saying that to me, Iâm going to pour my soup on you. Iâm the one that went out in the forest.âÂ
Even though you know itâs an empty threat, you lift your hands to safe guard yourself from Mingyuâs soup, watching him smile as he takes another small bite before leaning back against the headboard of his bed. He was going back home soon. Your parents had already left a few days before and now Mingyuâs father was due to be at the palace in a dayâs time to help Mingyu on his trip back to Leressair. You were going to miss him. You had enjoyed having a companion around, a piece of home.Â
âItâs not like itâs your fault either. You didnât attack yourself, but I still donât understand why you went out there. Seems reckless, even for you.âÂ
Laughing, clearly unamused at your jab at his actions, Mingyu shakes his head and shrugs. âI donât remember really. I mean bits and pieces, but not enough to really mean anything. Just that it was a bear and it was huge.â Seeing the concerned and terrified look on your face, Mingyu reaches to squeeze your fingers, rolling your eyes and adding. âAnd then your brave husband found me and saved my life. So now I am indebted to him for the rest of it, I suppose.âÂ
You did feel a sense of pride that Jihoon had been the one to find and rescue Mingyu. There had been a tension between the two of them that no longer seemed to exist after the incident and while you wished that it had never happened, you were much happier seeing them exist as something closer to acquaintances than enemies. âOh, for the rest of this life and the next.âÂ
âIâll accept this one. I donât need anything after.âÂ
Taking a deep breath at hearing Jihoonâs voice, you watch Mingyuâs eyes shift towards his door before he lowers his head respectfully.Â
âMonseigneur..âÂ
âHow are you feeling today?â It was a question out of genuine concern. Jihoon had found himself almost as often as you watching Mingyu as he slept. He would watch the younger manâs chest rise and fall almost like a new father watching their child sleep, making sure that the next breath was coming. While neither you nor Mingyu knew his true reasoning, Jihoonâs regret for the situation was apparent in his actions.Â
âMuch better. Iâm up often and many of the wounds are healing as the doctors hoped. Thank you for getting me to them so quickly, Monseigneur.âÂ
Lifting his hand, Jihoon dismisses Mingyuâs gratitude, not out of disrespect but because itâs not needed or wanted. He did what he had to. Not only as the soon-to-be crowned ruler of the kingdom, but also as the person responsible for Mingyuâs current condition. âJust pleased to see you looking healthier, and please just call me Jihoon.âÂ
You had tried to stay silent while Jihoon and Mingyu spoke but with Jihoonâs last request, you canât stop the soft breath you release with a smile. That meant more to you than either one of them understood.Â
âUh, I understand that your father will be joining us here at the palace tomorrow. That is also the day of the coronation. I hope that you both will attend. Not for myself, but for Y/N.âÂ
Again, Jihoon had you speechless and staring at him with tears on the rims of your eyes. Did he know how much that gesture meant to you? Even if Mingyu said no, just the point that Jihoon had made that effort had your heart tight in your chest.Â
âWe would be honored, MonseâJihoon. Iâve told her since she was young that sheâd make one hell of a queen, so I would be a fool not to see the moment firsthand.âÂ
âStop itâŠâ Whining under your breath, without much thought, you push Mingyuâs arm, causing him to wince in pain. âOh! Oh no!â Shifting on the bed, you carefully look over Mingyuâs bandages as he leans his head back, laughing.Â
Jihoon moves closer, running his fingers through his hair and letting out a deep sigh. âIf you live to see tomorrow.â Taking a step back as he teases you, Jihoon laughs when you whine his name, pouting up at him. âIâm sorry, darling. You are just too easy to tease. Heâs fine.âÂ
14
You hadnât thought that anything could possibly be more nervewracking than your wedding day, but that was until the day of the coronation. In reality, you didnât matter nearly as much as Jihoon and yet you knew that there would be front and center with him accepting a duty that you would be expected to fulfill the rest of your life.Â
Jihoon wasnât faring much better and though he had been groomed for this day his entire life, he still felt like everyone was going to see through the mask. He had wondered multiple times throughout the morning if he was going to be able to handle the stress of the day. He could feel his anxiety rising in his chest, the roaring in his ears that told him that he wasnât built for thisâit all went silent when you said his name and took his hand.Â
âAre you alright, Jihoon?â He had that same stoic look on his face and yet you could almost see the panic in his eyes as you stood behind Jihoon in the wings of the same church where the two of you had been married. There was a loud droning from the crowd of people waiting to see the new king be crowned, but it didnât matter once you and Jihoonâs eyes met.Â
âIââ Jihoon knew he could lie and tell you yes. He could put on a brave face even in front of you, but you were his wife and something in him told him that this was something he didnât need to lie to you about. âNot really. Iâm terrified, Y/N. Iâm afraid Iâm going to make a fool of myself, of you, and of my family.âÂ
That was unexpected. Though you and Jihoon had grown closer, he wasnât an open book. He rarely shared his insecurities with you or showed any weakness at all. In this moment, he truly looked like your husband asking for help from his wife. âYou arenât going to make a fool out of anyone, Jihoon. You were born for this.âÂ
You can see Jihoonâs look of doubt and how he wants to argue with you but when you step in front of him, lifting your hand to brush his hair from his forehead, he stops. âIt may not feel like it right now but you are a king and just because they are going to anoint you and add a crown doesnât mean that you instantly are going to make a mistake.âÂ
You were good at thisâmaking Jihoon feel less like a failure and like he was a real person. For his entire life, Jihoon had heard the same words that he was born for this but no one had truly expanded on it. You were the first person to make him actually feel like maybe those words were even close to true. âMaybe, butâbut what if I do?âÂ
God, had you always been this beautiful? Of course you had; Jihoon knew that, but as you stood in front of him, your soft fingers moving to his jacket to smooth it down over his chest, he swore you really were an angel. Jihoon knew that any moment now the archbishop would begin the ceremony and you both would have to face the kingdom, but for now he was happy to just look at you, feeling his nerves settle.Â
âThen we face it together.âÂ
It had just become another day when Jihoon was realizing how lucky he was to have you in his life. You didnât seem real. He remembered every face and name of the women who had come to Aetherial Grove before you, but somehow you were making it better without even knowing it. Leaning to brush his lips against yours, Jihoon smiles at the small, surprised but happy sound you make before you return the kiss. He was falling in love with you more and more every day.Â
âPardon the intrusion, Monseigneur... Madame. Itâs time.âÂ
You had felt anxious, afraid, and overwhelmed before the coronation had begun, but as you stood watching Jihoon being anointed and accepting his vows as king, you only felt pride. You had watched with stars in your eyes as the archbishop placed the crown on Jihoonâs head with a smile and spoke his final words, completing the ceremony.
âMay the King live forever.âÂ
Jihoon felt the weight of the crown on his head. He had looked at it many times, be it sitting atop his fatherâs head or put away for safekeeping, but he never thought it would actually be where it sits now. Taking a deep breath, Jihoon closes his eyes, feeling the archbishop place one final kiss on the rings placed on his hand before his eyes turn to you. Your part of the ceremony was shorter and less significant, but to Jihoon it meant more.Â
It was clear to those who knew you that you were nervous once again as the archbishop anointed you and guided you through your shorter vows. Jihoon tried to remain the stoic king he was supposed to be, but when the crown that his mother had worn for so many years was placed on your head, he felt such overwhelming pride. You were his wife and his queen.Â
Taking your hand, Jihoon squeezes it gently, whispering his praises for how well you handled the ceremony before leading you to sit down in front of the congregation as the ceremony truly comes to an end. Not only does the weight of the coronation slowly start to ease from your body with each person leaving, but also when the crown is taken from your head and put away, reminding you that it isnât something you have to bear every day. You would be the queen for the rest of your life but you wouldnât be weighed down by that crown at every turn and you would have Jihoon by your side every step of the way.Â
âMadame La ReineâŠâÂ
Narrowing your eyes at Mingyuâs voice, you canât help how your smile pulls at your lips even as you try to look annoyed at his teasing. He looked even better than he had a day before, though he found himself leaning on his father more than he would have liked.Â
âStop that. Iâm still me.âÂ
Mingyuâs grin makes you feel homesick for the briefest moment before you meet Jihoonâs eyes as he glances at you from over his motherâs shoulder. You were home and that man was your home.Â
âSorry, I canât help it. You looked so regal with the crown and the jewels. I almost didnât recognize you, Dove.âÂ
Mingyuâs father was slightly smaller than him, but his presence was always larger. He had been like a second father to you for almost your entire life from the moment that he and your father had become close friends. âMingyu, manners. She may not want to be called her title, but perhaps the childhood names arenâtââÂ
âItâs fine, I promise. I like the name. It reminds me that Iâm the same girl from Thornwood no matter where I end up.âÂ
"Well, youâll always be Dove to me.âÂ
You could see the sadness in Mingyuâs eyes. You werenât sure what it was stemming from but it was clear as day as he shifted from one foot to the other with a soft sigh.Â
âIâweâre leaving for Leressair. I just wanted to be able to congratulate you and say goodbye before we did.âÂ
There it was and now you felt the same sadness rush through you like a shockwave as you looked up at Mingyu. You knew he had to go. There were things to be done in Leressair just as there were things to be done in Aetherial Grove. Time didnât stop just because you wanted it to. âOh⊠So soon. Iâll miss you. Will you contact me? I want to know everything about how things are going and how you are feeling. Will you let me know if you need anything?âÂ
Mingyu knew this spiral. You would talk quicker and not let anyone else get a word in until the air in the room was all but used up. It was as if you thought if there was no space for anyone else to say that nothing could change or happen. You had done the same thing when you had left Thornwood. âY/N⊠Iâll miss you too. May I hug you? Or would that be inappropriate?âÂ
There werenât many people left in the church now and those who did remain knew who you were to Mingyu. They were the ones who lived in the palace and they were the ones who had helped care for him as he recovered over the last week. You didnât care if they thought it was inappropriate or not as tears sat on the rims of your eyes and you stepped forward, wrapping your arms around Mingyuâs waist, resting your cheek on his chest, feeling his cheek against your head.Â
âIâll write as often as I can, but Y/N... Iâm going to be fine. Iâm stronger than you think.âÂ
Furrowing his brows, Jihoon sighs as his mother continues her conversation, noticing that her son had stopped really listening to her. He was paying more attention to what was happening behind her, which had her curious. Glancing behind her, Jihoonâs mother sighs under her breath as you step back from hugging Mingyu and wipe tears from your cheeks. You were too close to that man and Jihoon allowed it, though she knew why. He was feeling guilty for what had happened, though he shouldnât.Â
âMon fils, are you listening to me? Would you rather see the duke off yourself? It seems your wife is doing a fine job of it.âÂ
Jihoon didnât like the words that his mother was using as she spoke about you. You werenât doing anything wrong. Jihoon wasnât upset with you; he was concerned about you. Seeing you cry for any reason at all had Jihoonâs chest tightening and his stomach bubbling with anxiety. âWhat? Noâno, maman. Sheâsâwhat are you talking about? Sheâs saying goodbye. Leave it alone. I donât want to talk about this anymore anyway.âÂ
Of course he didnât. Jihoon never wanted to talk about the difficult things and having an heir was a difficult thing. âIâm not doing anything to her, Jihoon, but this conversation canât be over. You need to listen to me and seriously consider my words. You are king now and the kingdom is going to start speculating a due date for your queen. They donât need a reason. They only need to know that you two were married to assume that you have made an heir.âÂ
That was a ridiculous notion. You werenât pregnant. Jihoon hadnât taken you to bed and it was no one's businessâexcept it was. His mother was right. He was the king of Aetherial Grove and you were his queen. You had spoken to him about duty before and now his mother was doing the same.Â
âMon fils⊠Iâm not trying to presume yourâhow you and Y/N spend your time, but we have to make sure that she is fertilââÂ
âMaman! Enough. Iâll take care of it. I understand.â
15
âShe insists, Y/N.âÂ
Sighing as you watch your things being packed up and moved out of your current rooms. Jieun was attempting to make the transition easier, but you had just gotten comfortable in your space and now Jihoonâs mother was adamant you were to take the proper room as queen.Â
âYouâll be much more comfortable in a larger area, Y/N. I have so much less stuff now.âÂ
You hadnât realized that she was in the room. You always tried to at least appear grateful or happy around Jihoonâs mother, but sometimes it was difficult. Forcing a bit of a smile, you turn towards her and take a steady breath before letting it out slowly into your words. âI only worry about your comfort, MadââÂ
âPlease call me anything else. My name or maman, like Jihoon does. How will I stand it when you have children running about the palace and you are still calling me Madame?âÂ
Children. That had been on her mind often as of late. She had made it known just as often. Clearing your throat, you force a small laugh, lifting your hands as if to say sheâs right, because she always was. âOf course, maman.â You choose the latter, to call her mother, hoping it might have the desired effect and it does. Jihoonâs motherâs face softens, a small coo slipping from her lips as she moves towards you, lifting her hands to cup your face.Â
âBeautiful, sweet girl. Iâm so very proud of you. Now⊠go. Get settled in your new rooms so that you can make yourself ready for your husband.âÂ
You knew that your face had gone hot under her hands, but you just laughed awkwardly before stepping back and looking down at your hands. It was clear to everyone in the room what she had meant but you had doubts that Jihoon would come to your room. It had been three weeks since you had gotten married and he had yet to show up for that reason. âMm, yes. Iâll go... Doâdo that. Have a good evening.âÂ
Jihoonâs heart was in his throat. He had put this off for as long as he could. He had listened to his motherâs nagging for weeks at this point, along with the constant questions at meetings as to if things had been âfruitfulâ with the queen. The word fruitful was beginning to lose its meaning. It was beginning to make Jihoon feel sick every time it was uttered.Â
It wasnât as if Jihoon had not found himself at your door more than once over the last few weeks. He had thought of you oftenâtoo often, hearing the sweet sounds you had made when he had just simply kissed you. Those memories led Jihoon right to your door, where he stood with his pants tight and his heart beating hard in his chest. Each and every time he would go back to his room out of fear of what might happen, but today the nagging had gotten to be too much. His mother had even moved you into the queenâs rooms, giving him fewer walls of separation between you and him.Â
This was a horrible idea. Jihoon could almost always tell when he was getting close to shifting. It wasnât going to happen tonight, but it was so close he could almost taste you in the air. Every sense was heightened and he felt on edge as he walked to your door, leaning his forehead against it before knocking.Â
You were already dressed for sleep when you heard the knock at your door. The first instinct you have is that perhaps Jieun forgot to do something or to tell you something, but then Jihoon says your name. The floor is cold under your feet as you make your way to the door. Slipping your robe over your shoulders, you put your hand on your chest, feeling your heart beating so hard and loud that you are afraid that Jihoon might hear it.Â
Cracking the door at first, you meet Jihoonâs eyes, a shy smile on your lips as you whisper a hello before pulling the door open so he can come in if he wants to. You donât want to presume that you know why Jihoon is at your room after dark, but you have hope. âDoâdo you want to come in?âÂ
Everything about you made Jihoon want to both run away and also stay exactly where he was. You were the picture of perfection in your white dressing gown and deep red robe hanging from one shoulder. Jihoon could see how nervous you were that he was there, but his own nerves matched, if not tenfold. âUm, yes, if you donât mind.âÂ
Moving into your room, Jihoon sighs softly, glancing around. He had spent plenty of time in these rooms with his mother but they had looked completely different. You had managed to make the space your own and somehow that comforted Jihoon. Everything about you comforted him.Â
âIs everything okay? You donât normally visit me so latââÂ
âNo, I know I donât. I justââ His brows furrowing as he pushes his thumb into his palm, Jihoon scoffs, trying to think how to go about this. How did one approach bedding their wife when it was a duty to do so? Shaking the thought from his head, Jihoon smiles and meets your eyes, reaching for your hand and brushing his thumb along the back of your hand as you tilt your head curiously. âIâm not very good at this.âÂ
Your heart had been beating loudly before; now it was threatening to beat out of your chest as Jihoon looked at you the way he did and when he stepped towards you. This was happening? You were scared but excited. Even though you were inexperienced, you could still feel the arousal beginning to burn in your lower abdomen. You just hoped that you wouldnât mess this up.Â
Such a sweet and innocent look in your eyes that made Jihoon want to die on the spot. Someone like you shouldnât be around him, especially when he wasnât completely himself. When he was so close to shifting, his inhibitions were lower, he was more aggressive, and he found himself needing or at least wishing for someone in his bed. For the last year Jihoon had stopped giving into the beast and seeking out women he would never see again, but now you were standing in front of him with those doe-like eyes, not knowing your husband was a predator. Â
âYou are so beautiful, mon ange. Can I kiss you?âÂ
Jihoon had said he wasnât very good at this, and yet you were practically whimpering as you told him yes to a simple kiss. Youâd take anything because the heat of his eyes on you was like standing next to an open flame. You needed him to help you get through this and right now he looked like a lighthouse guiding you home. âYes, please. Kiss me.âÂ
You shouldnât sound so sweet and desperate. God, you really didnât know what you were doing to him. Cupping your face in his hand, Jihoon brushes your cheek with his thumb before delicately placing a kiss on your pretty lips and listening to your whine. It wasnât enough; he knew it wouldnât be. It hadnât been enough for him. âShhâdonât talk right now.âÂ
The words confuse you, but you nod, feeling Jihoonâs lips find yours once more. Maybe this was how it went. You werenât supposed to speak to your husband while you were in bed, but the deeper his kisses got, the more urgent they got, and you struggled to stay silent. Whines and half-spoken words slip from your breath as Jihoonâs hand finds your waist, pulling you close to him and letting you feel how warm his body had gotten.Â
Jihoon almost felt as if he had a fever. He needed to get some of his clothes off; he could already feel his cock beginning to strain against his pants as you whined his name. Placing his finger against your lips, Jihoon meets your wide eyes as he uses his free hand to slide your robe down your arms, letting it fall to the ground at your feet. âTry not to talk, mon ange. I need you to listen to me.â Every time you spoke, it was like a red hot poker being stuck against his skin. The beast was very much awake and you had caught not only Jihoonâs interest but itâs interest as well.Â
ââM trying, Jihoon.âÂ
He knew you were. Your brows were knitted together so tightly and with every brush of his lips against bits of your exposed skin, you were almost choking on your moans to keep them silent. âI know. Youâre doing well, baby. Come here.âÂ
A gasp slips from your lips when Jihoonâs hands slide over your backside and he squats down just enough to hoist you up. Surprised, you wrap your arms around his neck and cross your ankles around his back as he walks towards your bedroom door with his eyes fixed on yours. Not only had he shocked you by picking you up, but Jihoon had called you baby. He had your heart swooning and the butterflies in your stomach dancing by the time he laid you on your bed and laid over you, his lips finding yours again.Â
Your lips were soft and even your muffled moans were like music to Jihoonâs ears as he nipped at your lips, feeling you arch your back, pushing your breasts towards him. Leaning back to look down at you, Jihoon smirks as he carefully unties the top of your dressing gown, watching you turn your head away from him shyly. Such a pure, perfect little flower he had under himâhe had to keep himself in check.Â
âIs this okay? If I see you?âÂ
Nodding with your head still off to the side, you whine when Jihoonâs thumb and forefinger grip your chin, gently turning your head back to the center so he can look at your face.Â
âDonât look away from me. You are so fucking beautiful, Y/N. You donât have to hide anything that is mine.âÂ
That possessive nature wasnât a natural thing for Jihoon. Of course he wanted you all to himself and he would fight for you, but he didnât possess you. The beast brought something deep out of him and when he looked at you and smelled how sweet you were, it made Jihoonâs mouth water with desire. You were hisâhis wife.
âYou are mine, right?â Gently tugging your gown down your arm, leaving just the top of your breasts exposed, Jihoon groans when you whine. âArenât you?âÂ
Warm breath fans over your neck and along the top of your chest before Jihoonâs lips walk in gentle kisses over every bit of your exposed skin as he waits for you to answer. Not wanting to break his rule about speaking, you nod as your fingers grip the blanket under you tightly, trying to keep yourself grounded. You had never felt like this in your life. No one had ever made you feel this desired or aroused until you met Lee Jihoon.Â
Glancing up at you, Jihoon grins when you nod, staying silent. You were a good girl, trying to listen to what you were told and thank God for that. He was hanging on by a thread. âMy pretty wife..." Muttering the words mostly to himself as he eases your gown further down your body, exposing more of your skin to him, Jihoon furrows his brows to just how perfect you are. Every curve, mole, scar, and blemish is like a work of art in front of him waiting to be explored.Â
âAhâJihoon.â Pressing your head back against the blankets, you moan his name when Jihoonâs lips brush over your nipple, causing chillbumps to erupt along your skin. You hadnât meant to speak but the feeling had surprised you so much that it had slipped from your lips before you realized.Â
Nipping at the bud, Jihoon growls under his breath hearing you let out a choked sobbing moan as you try to pull back from his teeth. âSaid to be quiet. I need for you to shuââ Stopping himself, Jihoon rests his forehead on your breast and takes a deep breath, bringing himself back down. âPlease, baby? Try for me.â
Tears were sitting on the rims of your eyes out of fear of disappointing Jihoon. You were afraid he would leave you wanting because you couldnât listen to him and follow one simple request, but again you nod as his thumb gently massages into your hips over your bunched-up gown. Â
âLift your hips. Good girl.â Jihoon felt as if he could grip the gown in his hands in half as he looked at you naked in front of him. He wanted to bury his cock inside of you so deep that youâd have an imprint of him left inside of you for weeksâthat youâd crave him as much as he was craving you right now, but Jihoon wasnât stupid and he wasnât as much of an animal as the beast was trying to make him be. You truly seem as pure as he imagined as you shyly placed your hand over the center of your legs and bit your lip out of nerves.Â
Sliding off the bed, Jihoon drops your gown to the floor and lets your watch as he rids himself of his shirt, letting your eyes slowly take in whats in front of you. âI am going to ask you a question and you can speak, okay, darling?â Waiting for you to nod, Jihoon sighs as he glances down at his pants undoing them, feeling your eyes on him still as he speaks. âI want the truth and I want you to know I wonât be upset or surprised either way you answer.âÂ
Fear makes its way through your mind as you wait for Jihoonâs question and as you watch him get undressed. You werenât sure what was making you more nervous, not knowing what he might ask or seeing him completely. With your voice small, you nod and whisper, "Okay.âÂ
Jihoon knew the answer before he even asked it; his thumbs pushed into the top of his pants, but he needed to hear you say it. âWill I be your first?â There was a small nagging part of him that wondered if Mingyu had gotten to you first, if sometime in your past with him the man had managed to talk you into letting himâÂ
âYes, Jihoon.âÂ
Of course you wouldnât have let anyone talk you into anything. You were perfect. Sighing out a deep breath, Jihoon nods approvingly before pushing his pants down, letting them fall to the floor. Perhaps he should have gone slower and made sure you were ready, but Jihoon watches as your eyes widen before you turn your head away as if to give your husband privacy to be naked.Â
âMon ange⊠Look at me. Iâm yours as much as you are mine.âÂ
It wasnât that simple. You had seen Mingyu shirtless before and even that had sent your head into a tailspin, but seeing all of Jihoon and knowing thatâthat would be going inside of youâwas almost too much to handle. Glancing towards him, you quickly look up at the ceiling as Jihoon laughs quietly, moving towards the bed, sliding his hand along your thigh, feeling the chillbumps once again covering your skin.Â
âYou are truly perfect. Here⊠move this.â Guiding your hand from between your legs, Jihoon groans under his breath, realizing it might have been a mistake. You were drenched with arousal and Jihoon could feel the hair beginning to stand up on the back of his neck even as he pressed a kiss to your fingertips, collecting the slick left on them before licking his lips clean. God, you tasted like a dream. He had to have you. Heâd die if he didnât. âNeed you to stay quiet again for me, baby.âÂ
Why did you have to be quiet? How were you going to be quiet? Jihoon was kissing your leg and not just that; he was kissing the inside of your thigh, getting so close to your pussyâto where you needed him the most. Closing your fingers around the blanket, you point your toes and cry out in surprise when you feel Jihoonâs tongue run between your folds for the first time. You hadnât meant to make a sound but the feeling had been so shocking and it had felt so good, you didnât know what to do.Â
Groaning to your taste, Jihoon pulls back from between your legs just enough to glance up at you, hearing your yelp. âDonât.â He knew it was a lot to ask of you, especially when he buries his face right back into your pussy, letting his tongue circle your throbbing clit. He needed this to survive now, only thisâonly you and your bodyâthat was what the beast was telling him as he growled loudly against your folds, his hands gripping your legs tightly, keeping you in place even as you squirmed.Â
âAhââ Gritting your teeth, you try even harder to stay quiet. You alternate between biting your cheeks to biting your lips to finally using your own hand to cover your mouth as you whine loudly behind it. There was a pressure building inside of you that you werenât going to be able to stop and Jihoon didnât seem to be stopping until he got what he wanted. Closing your thighs around Jihoonâs head, you lift your hips towards his mouth when you feel the pressure finally release.Â
Easing your legs apart, Jihoon licks his lips, moving his eyes along your body as you try to calm down from your orgasm. He wasnât done with you. He didnât even want to take a break. Logic told him to take his time, to give you time, but animal instinct told him to takeâand it was stronger than his logic as the moon shined high in the sky.Â
âTaste so fucking good. Keep your legs open for me.â Using his thumbs to spread your folds, Jihoon spits onto them, watching you wiggle almost uncomfortably as he turns his right hand palm up before easing one finger into your tight hole, feeling you instantly clench down around it.Â
You werenât ready to keep going. You felt exhausted and your legs were shaking so hard that you felt like you wouldnât even be able to walk if you wanted to. Whining Jihoonâs name and feeling his finger pushing into you, you reach for his wrist with one hand and grip the bedding under you with the other. âWaitâhurts.âÂ
Hearing you speak, Jihoon rolls his eyes and rests his head against your thigh, looking at your fingers resting on his wrist. He didnât register what you had said, only that you were speakingâ no, you were whining. âI told you not to speak. Didnât I?â You push your feet down on the bed, a soft sob slipping from your lips and Jihoon eases a second finger into you, marvelling at how your pretty little pussy sucks him in. He canât help but imagine it around his cock, feeling it throbbing against the bed, leaking profusely.Â
It should feel good. That was what you had been told by every one of your cousins. Your husband should want to listen to how to make you feel good, especially the first time, so why was yours telling you to be quiet as his fingers painfully stretched you before you were ready? Tightening your hand around Jihoonâs wrist as tears run down your cheeks, you say his name louder, lifting your hips in an attempt to get away from him, only to feel him push you back down harshly.Â
âWhat the fuck do you thinkââ With his thumb digging into your hip, Jihoon meets your eyes, seeing the fear and pain in them as tears drip off your cheeks. Carefully, he eases his fingers out of you and glances between your legs, making sure he hasnât hurt you in any way, before sliding back on the bed, running his hand over his lips, shocked by himself.Â
âIâm sorry, Jihoon. I just need a few minutes and then I can try again. It just feltââÂ
âI need to go.âÂ
Sitting up in your bed, you watch horrified as Jihoon quickly pulls his clothes back on, keeping his eyes down from you.Â
âWhat? No! Jihoon, Iâm sorry! I didnât mean to mess it up. I donât know what Iâm doing. Iâve never done this before.âÂ
God, Jihoon hated himself. He hated himself more than he had ever hated anyone or anything hearing you struggle to speak through your sobs. He knew he was breaking your heart again, but to him, that was better than hurting you or forcing something on you.Â
âItâs not that, Y/N! I justâI have to go!âÂ
What had you done that was so wrong that Jihoon couldnât even look at you as he left your room? Had you messed up that badly? Falling back on the pillows, hearing the door to your room slam shut, you draw your legs up towards your stomach and let go, sobbing loudly, not caring who or what might hear you as grief rips through you. You had Jihoon. You finally felt like his wife. You felt desired by him and now you felt discarded and completely alone again.Â
16
You had only fallen asleep due to exhaustion. Now you were wandering the palace, feeling like everyoneâs eyes were on you. It was like everyone knew that you had failed to not only fulfill your duty as Jihoonâs wife but as queen. The only person you had yet to see was Jihoon. It was like he was avoiding you. Quickly, you find out that you werenât wrong in your suspicions.Â
âI donât want to deal with this bullshit today, Soonyoung! Tell Wonwoo to cancel it. Iâm not doinââ Staring at you in the doorway to his study, Jihoon cuts off his own words, swallowing hard at the look on your face. He could see how exhausted you seemed to be and how swollen your eyes were even from across the room. You had been crying again. He couldnât do this. Not today. âIâm busy, Y/N.âÂ
âYouâre always busy, but couldnât I haveââÂ
âMust you always insert yourself where you arenât wanted or needed?âÂ
Visibly taken aback by Jihoonâs words, you put your hand on your chest, feeling your heart shatter. âThis isnât fair.â Your words are quiet, matching the stillness of the room as Jihoon stares at you and Soonyoung stands uncomfortably by his desk, unsure what to say or do. âPlease talk to me for five minutes, Jihoon. You owe me that.âÂ
Lifting his hand to dismiss Soonyoung, Jihoon leans back in his chair and runs his fingers through his hair, hearing the rumbling in his ears as you walk into the room past Soonyoung, letting him close the door behind him. It was a horrible idea for him to be alone with you. It was already later in the afternoon and Jihoon had already argued with nearly every single person he had come into contact with today. He didnât need you to be another. âI really donât have time for this today.âÂ
He never had time for you. That was what your brain and heart were telling you. This was how the rest of your life was going to be. Your life with Jihoon had been a series of extreme ups and downs and you were the lowest you had ever been at this moment. Wiping under your eyes, you nod, moving closer to his desk, knowing he would probably only give you exactly the five minutes you requested. âThen I thank you for your generosity in allowing me to speak to you. I just need you to explain to me whatâs wrong with me, Jihoon. Why do I disgust you so much that you would treat me like you do and leave me like you did? I need to understand what I can do to change and be who you want me to be, because I fear you are stuck with me and all I can do is apologize for that.âÂ
Your words take the air from Jihoonâs lungs and leave him speechless at first. He knew you were unhappy and upset after what had happened last night, but the idea that you thought that he found you disgusting made Jihoonâs mouth feel dry like a desert that hadnât seen rain in centuries. âYou donât have to change a thing. Thereâs nothing wrong withââÂ
âThatâs obviously not true. If that were true, you would have stayed last night, and we would have... Things would not have ended like they did. Jihoon, you wouldnât even look at me when you left.âÂ
Jihoon could feel the frustration rising in him. It wasnât your fault that he was so quick to anger but why couldnât you just let this go? Why did you have to push this today? If you could give him just one more day to get this out of his system, heâd be calmer, but no, here you were cutting him off and raising your voice. âIâm not dealing with this shit today, Y/N. I donât have to and I wonât.âÂ
Shocked by Jihoonâs response, you take a step closer to his desk, watching him recoil further into his chair. âAre you kidding me? You donât think that you owe meââÂ
âI donât owe you anything! Iâfuck! Go to your room. Itâs getting late and you know the rules.âÂ
Surely Jihoon had to be kidding. There was no way that he thought that he could get away with talking to you like this today after everything the two of you had been through over the past few months. This sounded more like the Jihoon that had ruined your bracelet after your engagement party. âNo! I donât have to just obey when you speak, Jihoon!âÂ
Standing up quickly from his seat, Jihoon barely flinches when the wooden chair hits the wall with a crash that causes you to gasp and take a step back. âYes, you do. Did you forget your vows, my sweet wife? To love, honor, and obey. So fucking obey and go to your goddamn room and lock the door for the night. I donât want to see you until tomorrow.âÂ
When you donât move quickly enough for Jihoon, your mouth opening and closing in disbelief, he sighs loudly, moving around his desk to grab your arm, feeling you struggle against his grip as he leads you towards the door opening as you protest.Â
âLet me go, Jihoon! God, you are a monster!âÂ
Making you walk towards your room, Jihoon growls under his breath as his eyes start to shift to golden. âYou have no fucking idea, darling.â Seething, Jihoon tugs open your door and pushes you inside, letting you stumble as you try to turn around to stop him before he slams the door in your face. âLock it!â Standing still, Jihoon stares at your door until he hears the lock click into place and only then does he turn back down the hall towards the front of the palace, feeling the night calling to him.
You were confused and pissed off by how Jihoon had treated you. Rubbing your hand along your bicep, you wince in pain, feeling the bruise forming under the skin from how hard he had gripped your arm, forcing you into your room just a few short hours ago. Now the sun was setting and you were feeling less afraid and more annoyed.Â
Fuck Jihoon. Fuck his stupid rules. The room felt small despite itâs size and you felt like you were suffocating. Looking at the door, you nod firmly as you make up your mind, turning the lock to disengage it before pulling the door open quickly, half expecting Jihoon to be angrily waiting on the other side. Instead, you find no one, just a dimly lit hallway like always. âHeâs ridiculous.âÂ
It doesnât cross your mind what had happened to Mingyu. None of the ghost stories or animal attacks so much as even visit your thoughts as you tug your robe around your dressing gown and walk confidently into the hall with one goal in mindâyou were going to go outside. You were going to enjoy the night air for the first time in months.Â
It had been so long since you had seen the stars from more than your bedroom window. Stepping out onto the courtyard, you smile up at the sky as you take in a deep breath of fresh air, taking a left into the gardens, intending to take a short walk. You were being rebellious but you werenât planning on being recklessly stupid. You werenât going to leave the palace grounds.Â
The flowers and trees looked different under the moonlight. They felt different under your fingertips somehow too. Perhaps that was the subtle dew that was settling on them as the nightair shifted into something a bit colder, causing you to hold your robe a bit tighter around yourself. You loved how quiet it was out here. There were no echoing voices from the palace. You werenât hearing Jihoonâs voice screaming in your head; instead, there was just the gentle sound of the wind and crickets. Or there had been crickets.Â
Tilting your head, you try to strain your ears to listen for the sounds of the bugs when a sudden exhale from just outside the wall startles you, making you jump and cover your mouth to keep from screaming. It didnât sound human, but it did sound large and it was moving.Â
Keeping your body low, though you know whatever is on the other side of the wall canât see you, you listen to the deep breaths of the creature and follow it along the line of the wall towards the large golden gate. You know you should stop where you are; logic is screaming for you to stay hidden but your curiosity takes over when you catch sight of the large bear just outside of the courtyard gates.Â
You had never seen a bear so large in your life. Its fur was dark and the pattern was unusual to you for a bear. It didnât seem like any sort of bear that you had ever read about or been told aboutâthis was something new. Taking a step out towards the gate, you think the bear is far enough away from the gate that perhaps you can watch it head back towards the forest, but your shoe catches a pebble and its head turns, alarmed by the sound, and catches your eyes. Golden? You could see them from here almost clearly. You were transfixed and terrified, stuck in place until the bear rushed the gate, hitting it so hard that you realized what you were doing and took a step back with a gasp only to loose your footing and fall backwards on your butt.
âOh my godâŠâÂ
When you speak, the bear seems to focus on your face, a look of recognition in itâs eyes before it growls, scratching at the ground near your leg through the gate. Kicking your legs to get away from the claws you whine when you feel your gown get tugged, pulling you back towards where you were trying to escape, drawing your eyes down to where the bearâs claws were digging into the ground and your gown. âNo, no! Please!âÂ
Tears stream down your cheeks as you try to pull yourself free, but then searing pain tears through your thigh when the bearâs claws tear through your gown, skin, and muscle. Screaming out of fear and pain, you lay back on the ground, feeling hands on your waist as someone pulls you away from the gate until the snarling of the bear is so distant that you can barely hear it anymore.Â
âMadame!â You looked pale, blood was seeping from the wound on your thigh quickly and Wonwoo was starting to panic. âFuck!â Pulling you into his arms, the steward is able to get you inside the house and on to the same floor where they had laid Mingyu the morning Jihoon had found him.Â
âWhat happened?!âÂ
âYou know what happened! Look at her leg, Jieun. Soonyoung get the doctor, now!âÂ
17
Some nights that Jihoon would shift felt more like a nightmare than others. Last night had to be the worst nightmare of Jihoonâs lifeâexcept it hadnât been a dream. Rubbing his fingers over the silk in his hand, Jihoon sits up in a panic, putting his free hand on his chest, struggling to breathe, remembering your frantic screams of pain as Wonwoo managed to get you away from him. What the fuck had he done?Â
Jumping to his feet, Jihoon groans to the pain in his head and body as he pushes through it, starting the run back towards the palace, feeling the rocks biting into his feet. Normally he would wait for Soonyoung to find him and to give him clothes but he didnât care today. You were hurt or possibly worse. Jihoon had to find you and make sure that you were okay. He had to fix this. How the fuck could he fix this?Â
âJihoon!â Sliding off the back of his horse, Soonyoung shakes his head, pulling the bundle of clothes from the back of the saddle, as he watches Jihoon run past him naked and panicking. He had seen all sides of his best friend before. The anger, the sadness, and the panic, but never had he seen him be willing to run through the forest completely naked. âJihoon, stop!âÂ
Hearing Soonyoungâs voice, Jihoon turns back towards him and runs to him, grabbing his shirt as he tries to keep his emotions in check, quickly failing as the panic slips through. âIs she alive?âÂ
âYes, yes! Iâll get you back to her, but put on some clothes first. You canât just run to the palace like this. Youââ Sighing seeing the desperate look in Jihoonâs eyes, Soonyoung grips Jihoonâs shoulder reassuringly. âYouâre the king. Pull yourself together.âÂ
Jihoon wasnât sure how he was supposed to keep himself together. The entire ride back to the palace Soonyoung reminded him to remain calm on multiple occasions until they reached the stable and he was able to go search for you. It was clear that the others in the palace were on high alert. This was different from any other time that Jihoon had attacked or killed anyone. It wasnât even that it was you; it was that you were the queen.Â
âWhere is she?âÂ
Wonwoo knew that Jihoon would be back soon. He could see that the man looked worse for wear, but he always did after a night in the forest. He would prefer if he bathed and took care of himself before going to see you, but the look in Jihoonâs eyes told him that wasnât going to happen. âIn her room with the doctor. Sire!â When Jihoon doesnât stop, his steps quick towards the hallway that would lead him to you, Wonwoo sighs, âJihoon!âÂ
Tears were already sitting on the rims of Jihoonâs eyes when he turned around to meet Wonwoo. He didnât want to talk to anyone else before he saw you. He needed to see you or else he was going to die right there on the spot. His heart would give out from guilt and grief. âWhat!âÂ
âShe was asking for you all night. I told her that you were out. I couldnât explain where.âÂ
Leaning his head back to try to keep the tears from spilling over, Jihoon nods and sniffs hard, knowing that he had hurt you in so many ways. He wasnât even there when you needed him the most, when you were asking for him while you were scared and in pain. He was a failure and a monster. Just like you had called him. Â
You had been in and out of consciousness over the last few hours since the attack. You werenât feeling much of the pain from the medicine, which was also helping you to sleep. Even now as the doctor changed out your bandages, his brows furrowed at the deep gashes he had stitched closed, you barely flinched, and you didnât notice Jihoon moving into the room, his eyes glossing over at the sight of you.Â
âIsâwill she be okay?âÂ
The doctor hadnât expected anyone else to be in the room, so when Jihoon spoke, the older man sighs, lifting his hand to his chest to calm himself down before looking towards him and lowering his head in respect. âYes, sire. The butler was able to get me to her quickly and I stopped the bleeding. There will be scarring, but the queen will be fine as long as we keep infection from settling in the wounds.âÂ
Nodding along with his words, Jihoon moves closer as the doctor finishes up his task, moving from your bedside, allowing Jihoon to take his place at your side. You looked so small and fragile as you slept. Jihoon felt like his heart was being crushed as he looked over your sweet face and then down at your thigh, where blood was already beginning to seep through the bandages that the doctor had just replaced.Â
All of the emotions that Jihoon had been trying to keep at bay come to the surface with that blood, knowing that he did this to you. You were going to be in pain because of him. Tears stream down Jihoonâs face as he closes his eyes and rests his forehead against his hand, his elbow on his knee just letting you rest. He didnât want to disturb youâhe didnât want to do anything to cause you discomfort ever again.Â
âJihoon?âÂ
Your voice brings Jihoon back to the moment and causes his shoulders to shake as he chokes back a sob hearing how weak you sound. Sniffing back his tears, Jihoon licks the tears from his lips and opens his eyes to meet yours before taking your hand and squeezing it gently, unsure what to even say.Â
âWhere were you? Iââ Wincing as you try to move in the bed wanting to sit up, you fall back down on your pillows, feeling Jihoon helping you get back to where you were, his fingers brushing over your cheek.Â
âIâm so sorry, Y/N. IâI donât evenâŠâ How was he going to lie to you again? He couldnât tell you that he did this. How could he? âI was called away last minute and I was outââÂ
âWhat? That makes no sense.â Shaking your head, you sniff back your own tears, knowing he is lying to you. âJihoon, I was alone and afraid. I justâplease donât lie to me.âÂ
Taking a deep breath, Jihoon tries to think of what to say next, his eyes moving from your face to your leg and back multiple times. You find yourself wondering if he is disgusted by it and what scars will remain. Reaching for the sheet near your leg, you pull it over your bandages and lower your head in shame, causing Jihoonâs resolve to break.Â
âFuckâY/N. Iââ Choking on his own sob, Jihoon shakes his head, moving to his feet even as you reach for him, starting to feel concerned and confused by his reaction. âIâm so sorry. Iâll never let something like this happen to you again. I swear.âÂ
âYou couldnât have preventedââ Watching Jihoon turn and move out of your bedroom, you force yourself to sit up despite the pain, wanting to stop him even though you are unable. âJihoon!âÂ
Even hearing you yell his name sends Jihoon down a darker spiral, his fingers tugging at his hair as he leans against your closed door, the tears dripping off his cheeks and on to his shirt.Â
âSire?âÂ
Wonwoo⊠Closing his eyes at hearing Wonwooâs voice, Jihoon knocks his head back against the wooden door as the thought comes to him of what he has to do and who would help him do it. If anyone in this palace would listen to him, it was Wonwoo.Â
âI need you to help me with something.âÂ
âOkay, whatââÂ
âAnd Y/N⊠she doesnât need to know.âÂ
18
It had been a week and a half since the attack and everyone in the palace was acting off. They were being too nice to you. You knew that you were queen, but this went beyond that. It went beyond being injured... something was wrong and Jihoon was nowhere to be found.Â
âWonwoo?âÂ
You were back again. Humming along with your questioning voice, Wonwoo gestures along with what he wants a few of the other servants to do, barely giving you a second glance even as you stand in front of him.Â
âWhere is he?âÂ
âI told you, Madame, he is away on business.âÂ
He had told you many times over the past week and every single time it smelled like shit. Jihoon didnât go places. He didnât do business outside of Aetherial Grove.Â
âWhich kingdom again?âÂ
âMultiple kingdoms, Madam. Is there anything else? Jieun can see to it. Excuse me.âÂ
All of Jihoonâs things were still in his room. How and why would he leave without a single item? There was something wrong and you werenât going to just take this lying down. There was something you were missing; you just had to find it.Â
There were so many places in the palace that you had yet to see that you discovered in your search for clues on where Jihoon had really gone. There were multiple staircases that you had yet to go up or down. Some led to rooms you had seen by other avenues and others took you by surprise when you discovered another study overlooking the garden. But it was the staircase that led down past the servants quarters that shocked you the most.Â
From the outside, looking in, the palace of Aetherial Grove was grand and tall. It never dawned on you that anything menacing might lie inside the intricate golden gates and beneath her marble floors. What you found was dark and secluding as you stayed in the middle of the aisle among the empty cells of the dungeon.Â
While it made you feel better that the dungeon wasnât overflowing with people begging you to be freed, it still made you feel oppressed as you wrapped your arms around yourself, searching deeper and deeper and wondering who might have been there at one point. Thornwood did not have a dungeon; there had never been a need for one. Your mother had read you old stories of kingdomâs with dragons and princesses locked away in their dungeons, and now as you walked around one, you shuddered at the thought.Â
It seemed to go on forever in the dim light. The cells as dark as the walls, you were about to give up and return to the upper floors of the palace when shuffling from a cell to your right startles you. It had to be a trick of your mind and nothing more, but as you got closer, you could hear panicked breaths behind the thick iron cell door.
âHeâhello? Is there someone in there?âÂ
Covering his head with his hands, Jihoon knows he has to be imagining you. It wouldnât be the first time since he had made Wonwoo put him in the dungeon that he had started to hallucinate. Shaking his head, muttering no, no, no, he laughs a bit manically under his breath as he glances up towards the small, barred window, seeing fingers gripping the iron. âStop itâŠâÂ
Jihoonâs voice sends a shiver down your spine and for a moment you stare at the door in front of you like itâs not even there. It feels impossible to hear him in a place like this and not only that but to hear him sound like thatâso weak and scared. âOh my god! Jihoon?âÂ
Tugging at the handle of the cell door, you feel warm tears run down your cheeks when it wonât budge. Why was he locked inside of a cell? This was insane. He was the king of this palace for godsakes. âJihoon! I canâtâthe door wonâtâitâs locked!âÂ
You were actually there? No, there was no way. Moving to his feet, Jihoon winces to the light through the bars when he sees your eyes as you rise to your toes, trying to see inside the cell. You were so beautiful. It was painful to see you. âGo away, Y/N.âÂ
Shaking your head, you tug at the door again in vain, not understanding Jihoonâs words. It didnât make sense to you. âIâI donât understand! I canât go away. I wonât! I have to get someone to get you out of here. Who put you here?!âÂ
The laughter starts low and soft until finally Jihoon canât hold it back. It was all ridiculous to him now. He hated himself so fucking much and he loved you just as much only to have a solid iron wall between the two of you now. That was the only way you were safe, and even then, Jihoon knew he could break it down if he tried hard enoughâif the beast tried hard enough. âWho put you here?!âÂ
Taken aback when Jihoon mimics your words and the tone of your voice, you stare into his cell, trying to see him better. With limited light making itâs way into the cell, you could only see bits and pieces of him, but it was enough to tell he was naked and filthy. There was dirt and... was that blood? No, you were letting your fear get the better of you.Â
âWhatâs wrong, Jihoon?â Pushing your fingers back through the bars, you sob out the words watching your husband move closer to the door, feeling a chill run down your spine seeing him closer. He didnât look like himself at all. Jihoon was always well put together, but now his hair was matted with dirt and there was a look on his face you didnât recognizeâand his eyes. His eyes were so different. Why did those eyes look so familiar? Those golden eyes?
Sliding his fingers over yours, Jihoonâs eyes take in every bit of you that he can, knowing that he might never see you again. He thinks back to seeing you laying in bed, the blood seeping through the bandages as you whined in your sleep before waking up and asking him things he couldnât answer. âPlease leave me. Do this for me.â
You could hear the sorrow in Jihoonâs voice that it was breaking you in pieces. Why would he want to stay here? This wasnât something he could ask of you. Shaking your head, you start to argue with him when Jihoonâs voice becomes more frantic, his fingers holding yours tightly behind the door.Â
âPlease! Please?! Y/N, canât you do this one thing for me? Let me die down here where I canât hurt you!âÂ
Trying to pull your hand away from Jihoon as you sob, you try to say his name when you feel an arm wrap around your waist and another around your wrist, easing you back from the cell door.Â
âLet go of her, Sire... now.âÂ
Growling from inside the cell makes your blood run cold, but Jihoonâs fingers slide from yours and Wonwoo is able to bring your hand down from the door and to your stomach, where he holds it to you tightly.Â
âItâs time to go back upstairs, Madame.âÂ
Why was Wonwoo always part of things like this? Trying to pull from his grasp, you whine his name, finding his grip too strong as he turns with you in his arms, walking back the way you had come. Behind you, you hear Jihoonâs growling soften into a whimper of your name as you lean your head back against Wonwooâs chest, begging the man to let you go so you can go back for your husband.Â
âI canât. Please walk or Iâll have to carry you.âÂ
âI hate you. You did this, didnât you? Why did you lock him in there?!âÂ
Sighing to the tone of your voice when you scream at him, Wonwoo bends his knees and pulls you into his arms much like he had the night he had saved you from the beast. Even though you push at his chest and struggle to get loose from him, you find yourself unable to grow wearier with each step up towards the light.Â
âBecause he asked me to, Madame.âÂ
19
Over the next few days, you find yourself getting lost in the palace as you attempt to find the staircase to the dungeon again. You had known where it was. You had seen Jihoon and felt his hand on yours, and yet by the time that you had made it upstairs with Wonwoo, it was as if exhaustion had clouded your mind, causing you to become confused and disoriented.Â
You knew better than to ask Wonwoo for his help. He was keeping a closer eye on you, ever looming at every step you took and always directing you in the direction of your parlor or the library for a distraction. He was always reminding you that Jihoon was away on business. He was always lying to you, even though he knew that you knew the truth.Â
It wasnât until the fourth day that you managed to get Soonyoungâs facade to crack. You had watched him wander aimlessly around the palace only to look at you and start to say something before turning in the other direction. Something was on his mind and you knew what it was. He hated the idea of Jihoon in the dungeon as much as you did; he had to. That was his best friend.Â
âStop walking away from me.âÂ
Shaking his head as he continues walking away from you, Soonyoung furrows his brows, feeling his stomach twist with anxiety as you continue to follow with a limp in your step. âIâm not, madame... Iâm justâIâm trying to get something done.âÂ
âStop lying to me, Soonyoung! Stop making me chase you.âÂ
You were out of breath and Soonyoung felt horrible, but it wasnât until he heard you wince in pain and heard the sound of you hitting the floor that he stopped in his tracks, running back towards you. Moving his eyes quickly over your face and down your body, Soonyoung feels the anxiety in him turning to panic as his hand hovers over your leg before he gives in and meets your eyes. âAre you hurt? Do I need to get the doctor? Is it your leg?âÂ
Dropping your act, you let out a slow, calming breath, grabbing Soonyoungâs hand and keeping him close to you. âIâm fine; I donât want a doctor. I want my husband.âÂ
Opening his mouth in awe, Soonyoung is genuinely impressed by your willingness to go so far as to feign reinjuring yourself. You were a strong-willed woman and even more strong-willed since you became queen. Swallowing hard, Soonyoung shakes his head, looking down at the floor in front of you as you tell him what you want. He starts to tell you the same thing everyone else has when you grab his chin and make him meet your eyes.Â
âI justâI want to take him food. Help me get back down there, please? I just want to see him for a few minutes. You can do this much for me.âÂ
Soonyoung knew this was a horrible idea as he walked in front of you, leading you down into the dungeon. Wonwoo would kill him and then blame it on someone else if this went poorly. Everyone had been warned not to let you come back down to the cells and yet here Soonyoung was doing just that and leading you right to Jihoon. âTen minutes, Y/N... Anymore and Wonwoo will come looking for you.âÂ
You watch as Soonyoung looks inside Jihoonâs cell with his brows furrowed before he unlocks the cell door and steps back, letting you pull the door open. What you find is very different from what you had expected. Jihoon had seemed delusional and manic the last time you had seen him; now, while he seemed confused and afraid, he was lucid.Â
Tears instantly fill your eyes at the sight of him as you move into the cell and put the plate of food on the bench. Moving to Jihoon, you throw your arms around his neck, feeling him carefully hold on to your waist. What you donât see are Jihoonâs eyes locked on Soonyoung's, full of confusion and anger, before he buries his face against your neck, enjoying the moment knowing he has to let you go.Â
âWhy are you here, mon ange?âÂ
He really was different. This was your Jihoon now. Shaking your head, you sit beside him and carefully inspect him, lifting your hand to brush your fingers over his cheek, feeling Jihoon lean into your touch. âMiss you so much. WhyâIâI brought you food.â Turning back to the plate, you put it on your lap and watch Jihoonâs smile turn sad as he nods gratefully.Â
âI eat, darling. I donâtâIâm not starving.â He missed you terribly. This was making it worse. He had realized he loved you and now he was keeping himself from you. You were sitting right next to him, teasing him with the possibility of having his wife in his life, and Jihoon couldnât take it. âYou canât be down here. Soonyoung, you needââÂ
âPlease, Jihoon. End this. Come upstairs and back to me? Iâll do anything. Iâm sorry for whatever I didââÂ
âYou didnât do anything, Y/N. I did. Iâyou donât get it.âÂ
You didnât and yet, as always, Jihoon wasnât explaining it. âThen explain it to me. I need my husband. I cannot and will not live my life like this with you living in a cell.âÂ
You had every right to be angry with Jihoon. That was better than blindly trusting him. Looking towards the door, Jihoon sighs. Following his eyes, you see how the door is bent and scratched. That hadnât been there before. It didnât make any sense. How had Jihoon done that to a solid iron door? He seemed so normal and calm now compared to how he had been before. Did you even really want to know the answer to any of the questions you were asking yourself?Â
âOrâjust come home. You seem so much better.âÂ
âI do feel better, for now.â Jihoon wasnât lying. He was a couple days out from shifting at this point and this was when he felt the best he could. He was on top of the world and could accomplish anything, but soon he would be right back where he was. You had visited him right before he shifted last time. You had put yourself in danger once again unnecessarily and that was what terrified Jihoon. You didnât listen. âBut you alwaysâyou didnât stay inside that night, Y/N.âÂ
âIâll stay inside! Forever!â Grabbing Jihoonâs hand, you blink through tears and pull his hand to your lips as you beg him to end this. âI swear it. Please?âÂ
Jihoon feels his chest tightening as you kiss his knuckles and as your tears hit his skin. He knows he should say no and stay where he is. No one, especially you, can be hurt or killed while he is locked away, but then you meet his eyes and plead with him once more and Jihoonâs resolve breaks. âOkay, mon ange.âÂ
20
There was ignorance and then there was blissful ignorance. For a week you had attempted to be blissfully ignorant, enjoying the presence of Jihoon back in the palace. Things had gone back to normal as much as they could, though you couldnât shake the nagging feeling that was growing inside of you.Â
So much about your life in Aetherial Grove didnât make sense. Jihoon didnât make sense and how everyone acted around him didnât make sense. They treated him as if he were made of glass, so fragile that one wrong word and he might break. You were the only person to not treat him this way and many times you found yourself being chastised for doing so and being reminded that the king has a fragile temperament.Â
Even with all of the looming anxiety and building tension in the palace, you had kept your word to Jihoon and stayed inside each and every night for close to two weeks. Not once in those two weeks did he come to your bed or make an effort to be closer to you than he already was and you found yourself growing more and more weary as the days crept by, wondering if this was the life you were resigned to.Â
It wasnât until Jihoon had kissed you gently one evening and whispered his goodnight wishes to you earlier than any other night that week that you found yourself feeling defiant. You had promised not to go outside, but that didnât mean you couldnât wander the palace after dark. You could go to Jihoonâs room and speak to him about how you were feelingâsurely this would be allowed.Â
So that was where you found yourself, standing in front of Jihoonâs open door, finding it empty. He had said he was tired and that he was going to bed not ten minutes ago and yet there was no one to be found. Sighing under your breath, you tug your robe around you tighter and furrow your brows as you start to go back towards your room when you hear the sounds of the heavy front doors shutting. Why would anyone be going outside at this time of the night? You werenât allowed to, so surely no one else was either.Â
Following the sound, you let your hand hover over the door before finally pushing it open and shivering instantly to the cold night air, stepping out into the darkness feeling a pang of guilt in your stomach. You were breaking your promise, but something wasnât right. There was someone at the gates and they were open. Moving towards them, you start to speak when you find yourself horrified and shocked as you watch Soonyoung easing the gate closed as Jihoon falls to the ground just outside of it, his skin ripping as something bursts through the muscle. What was happening? Why wasnât Soonyoung helping him?Â
With your hand on your stomach, you try to run with your leg beginning to burn and Jihoonâs name on your lips when you find yourself collapsing as Jihoonâs body starts to change in front of your eyes. Limbs break and between his screams, he growls like an animal. Fur takes the place of his skin and quickly he becomes something you had seen once before when it had attacked you.Â
Turning back towards the palace, his head bursting with tension and anxiety, Soonyoung stops in his tracks just a few feet from the gate when he sees you sitting on your knees in front of him. Terror takes the place of his anxiety as Soonyoung runs towards you, pulling you to your feet as Jihoon snarls at the gate, pushing against it, seeing you both there. âY/N! You canât be out here! You promised!âÂ
With the wind biting at your face, tears drip off your cheeks and onto your gown as you stare at Jihoonâs golden eyes as he tries to push in the gate, finding it impossible. You push at Soonyoungâs chest as he tries to lift you, your eyes locked on Jihoon, until hands hold either side of your face, making you look at Soonyoung. âWe have to go inside! The gate is strong but if he tries harder, it wonât hold.âÂ
âIs thatâŠ.â You knew the answer to your question and yet it didnât seem real as Soonyoung pulled you to your feet, feeling you collapse only a few feet from the palace doors. "Soonyoung, is that Jihoon?! Did heâMingyu? Me?!âÂ
Shaking his head, Soonyoung wants to tell you no. He wants to make you get up and tell you that itâs all a bad dream but he canât so instead he stays silent and gestures towards the door.Â
âTell me!âÂ
âSoonyoung, go inside. Iâll tell her.âÂ
Lifting your eyes toward the doors as light spreads out along the courtyard, you and Soonyoung stop everything to meet the eyes of Jihoonâs mother, seeing a solemn look on her face. You watch as Soonyoung starts to argue only for her to lift her hand and for her to offer it to you to take.Â
âIâll explain it all.â
21
The ground is hard under Jihoon and yet his body doesnât feel nearly as cold as it usually does when he wakes up early in the mornings. He can hear the birds chirping and the trees shifting with the gentle wind. If it werenât for the rocks under his body and the ache in his muscles, it would almost be peacefulâwelcomed.Â
Jihoon could remember seeing Soonyoung dragging you back to the palace the night before. He hadnât attacked you; thank God for that, but you had lied to him. That would be something he would have to deal with once he got back to the palace, but for the time being, Jihoon lay quietly, feeling the sun heating up the blanket draped over his body.Â
Then it dawns on him that there is a blanket covering him. Not once has he ever woken up to something like this. Soonyoung would often be waiting for him with clothes and sometimes even something warm to eat or drink, but he had never gotten close enough to cover him as he slept. Someone had.Â
Lifting his head, Jihoon searches around him and thatâs when he sees you sitting with your back against a tree, your eyes moving over a book resting on your lap. Why the fuck were you here? Panicked Jihoon takes a sharp breath, sitting up almost too quickly, feeling the blood rushing to his head. There was no reason for you to be out in the forestâno reason for you to be near him like this... unless you knew.Â
Muttering your name under his breath, Jihoon notices the clothes folded next to him and whines, realizing how much you seemed to prepare for this moment. You seemed to have been waiting for a while. Even now hearing him panic behind you, the only sign that you knew he was awake was the way you turned your head further, offering him more privacy.Â
Tugging the pants over his legs, Jihoon looks from you and back down to the ground as he stumbles, trying to hurry as he attempts to walk and dress at the same time. Fear was taking hold of him; it was coursing through his veins like never before and by the time that he was dressed, he found himself falling to his knees in front of you with tears in his eyes and shaking his head.Â
âIâIâm so sorry, mon ange. Iâmââ Swallowing hard as he meets your eyes, Jihoon loses the composure he had, the tears streaming down his cheeks once you close your book. âIâm a monster, Y/N. You donât deserve this shit. Youâfuck⊠I hurt yoââÂ
Jihoon wants to explain it all and make you understand how sorry and dangerous he is but all his words jumble together. None of it seems to matter to you as you lift your hand, resting it against his cheek, your thumb brushing the tears from it as you shush him, shaking your head along with his words.Â
Leaning into your touch, Jihoon lets out a shaky sob, cupping your hand his own and bringing it to his lips to kiss your palm when you donât speak. He was terrified of what you might say, but you say nothing and yet he can feel it all as you simply sit with him in the moment.Â
Hand in hand, you and Jihoon finally make your way back to the palace. You feel his thumb brush the back of your hand as he takes deep breaths to keep himself steadfast, knowing itâs not just your eyes on him anymore. Now you understand him. You understand it all. While it doesnât make any of what had happened to you or any other woman that came to Aetherial Grove right, you still understand it, and itâs not Jihoonâs fault.Â
He didnât choose this curse. He wasnât the person who was at fault and yet he was the one who bore it. You had sat watching him sleep that morning and decided that he wouldnât bear it alone.Â
âIâm just going to get cleaned up, darling, and then we can talk a bit more.âÂ
Standing at the door to Jihoonâs room, you smile at him as he lifts your hands to his lips, pressing a kiss to each one before he starts to turn to leave you. âJihoon.âÂ
You hadnât spoken much to Jihoon since he had woken up and yet that was okay. There was something in your comforting silence that made Jihoon feel at peace. Hearing his name on your lips now was almost a welcomed surprise that had him half concerned and intrigued as Jihoon brushed his fingers over your cheek, humming questioningly as your eyes searched his face.Â
âCan I stay? Let me help you.âÂ
Innocent and his. Parting his lips to let out a soft breath, Jihoon tries to think of how to speak but you donât let him dwell on it. You take his hand in yours and open the door to his room, leading him in on your own.Â
There was always a bath ready for Jihoon by the time he was back from the forest; today wasn't the exception. Stripping off the clothes you had brought him one by one, Jihoon furrows his brows and tries to muffle a pained groan as he feels the tension in his back muscles knowing you arenât too far away.Â
From where you were, you could see Jihoon out of the corner of your eye as you kept your eyes down once again, attempting to give your husband his privacy until he was in the water. You had seen him naked the night he had come to your room and briefly before you covered him with the blanket, but still you felt your cheeks heat up at the thought.Â
Hearing the water break and shift, you take in a deep breath, listening to Jihoonâs sighs of relief before finally lifting your eyes and moving towards him as he watches you. His eyes had been intense before but knowing what you know now, somehow they felt different. You werenât necessarily scared of him and you didnât pity him, but there was something about him that kept you on your toes.Â
Jihoon could see the shy look on your face as you swallowed your breath sitting on the side of the tub, keeping your eyes averted from looking down into the water. He was your husband and still you were so sweet and innocent you were afraid to look. Perhaps that was his faultâno, he knew it was.Â
Sighing softly as he watches you lather your hands with soap, Jihoon anticipates your touch only to feel a shiver run through his body when you finally do touch him. Your hands are gentle and soft, matching how delicate you really are as you work the soap into his skin along the top of his shoulders. âYou donât have to help me with this.â Even though Jihoon speaks, his words saying one thing, he closes his eyes, relishing in the feeling of you, causing you to smile softly.Â
âI want to. Youâre my husband and Iââ Rubbing your lips together, you swallow your words, tilting your head as Jihoon leans his head back, letting your hand slide over his chest, dragging the lather with it. You know what you want to sayâhow you feel about Jihoon, but it terrifies you almost as much as watching him shift or as much as feeling the arousal bubbling in your stomach as you help him bathe. You know you are being selfish.Â
Furrowing his brows hearing you stop talking, your words unspoken, Jihoon opens his eyes and looks up at your pretty face, watching your eyes avoid his in place of looking at your hand as you work. âAnd?âÂ
Trying to smile and distract Jihoon from wanting to know more, you shake your head, reaching for the soap once again before shrugging. You sigh out a breath, trying to keep your attention on the task at hand, feeling yourself shaking slightly as your fingers work close to the waterline, feeling Jihoonâs muscles tense under your touch.Â
âFuckââ Biting his lips, Jihoon sucks in a breath, knowing you arenât trying to seduce him even as you spread the lather over his stomach, your fingers dipping below the water. âBabyââ Leaning his head back, Jihoon reaches for your hand, wrapping his fingers around yours carefully, keeping it in place as he feels his cock twitching under the water, getting harder from just your innocent touch.Â
Itâs only when Jihoon stops you and you watch him take in deep breaths to try to calm himself that you realize your error and your eyes shift to the bathwater. âIâm sorry. DoâI can fix it.âÂ
Scoffing under his breath, Jihoon licks his lips and shakes his head, wondering to himself if youâd even know how to fix it. Would his sweet angelic wife know what to do with his cock all on her own? God, it was horrible for him to want to know, especially after everything that you had been through because of him. âItâs okay, mon ange. Itâll go away in a bit.âÂ
Feeling Jihoonâs fingers pat yours over his stomach, you pout to yourself as he keeps his eyes closed. You know deep down that he is trying to be kind and keep your innocence, but you find yourself offended by it and feel like a challenge is placed in front of you. Humming under your breath, you work your hand free from Jihoonâs feeling his stomach suck in under your touch as he mutters your name when your touch timidly goes lower. Perhaps you didnât have all the practice, but you werenât going to be put in your room and told to lock the door now that you knew what you knew. You were going to know everything.Â
âAhâwait!â Hissing out a breath, Jihoonâs eyes open widely to look between your face and down to the water as you wrap your fingers around his cock and stroke him once, holding him tightly. Holding the tub with one hand, he puts his other around your hand, loosening your grip slightly as you meet his eyes before guiding you. âShitâlike that, okay?âÂ
Adjusting with Jihoonâs help, you nod, your lip caught between your teeth as you feel his cock throb in your hand as you run your hand over it slowly. You can't help but be intrigued by the feeling and enjoying the weight of it in your hand as you feel the arousal pooling between your legs, causing you to whimper out a yes in response to Jihoonâs directions.Â
âFeels good, darling. You are so beautiful. Iâshit⊠You are too pretty to touch me, you know that?â Furrowing his brows, Jihoon groans your name like a prayer, helping you speed up your hand as he lifts his hips, chasing the feeling of his high.Â
This felt completely different from when Jihoon had come to your room. It was more than the fact that it was you touching him; it was that you knew him better. You trusted him more. You loved his man and you wanted to make him feel good. Watching his mouth part in a groan, you furrow your brows and hold back a soft moan of your own when Jihoon falls over the edge.Â
Tightening his grip around yours, Jihoon whines, letting you overstimulate him for a few seconds before he moves both your hand and his from his cock, letting it rest against his thigh. It had been so long since he had experienced something like that with someone else, but the fact that it was youâJihoonâs mind was racing and his cock wasnât fully softening. He had heard your pretty moans as you stroked him through his climax and now he couldnât help but let himself wonder how wet you might be.Â
The silence is almost deafening for a few seconds until Jihoon meets your eyes as he presses his thumb gently into your palm, drawing a small circle, causing your thighs to clench. You knew that you wanted him, but you were scared to ask. Luckily, your eyes said enough and Jihoon didnât want to keep you waiting.Â
Water soaks through your dress as Jihoonâs body presses against yours with your back against his bed. You whine to the feeling of his lips moving along your neck as his fingers impatiently work to undo ties and buttons before you hear and feel the fabric tear at your shoulder. âJihoonââÂ
ââM sorry⊠Fuck, Iâm sorry. Iâll get you more. Iâll buy you a thousand dresses and all the things you want, but I have to get you out of this fucking dress right now.âÂ
You could hear the desperation in Jihoonâs voice as he rutted his hips against your leg over the skirt of your dress, his fingers tearing at ruined sleeves so that his lips had more access to your skin. Leaning up on your elbows, you whine Jihoonâs name, feeling his tongue lap at your skin even as his fingers tug your dress carefully down to your waist, leaving your chest exposed to him.Â
âYou sound so pretty, baby.â He had been afraid to let you speak before when he was in your bed. The beast was listening too closely and he was not only a fool but a coward. Now as he relished in the sounds of your whimpers and moans, Jihoon willed the beast back, determined to enjoy you and every single sound you made for him in his bed. âGod, I love you so fucking much.âÂ
Jihoon hadnât meant to confess to you like that. His head was swimming with adoration for you along with lust as he worshipped your body, leaving kisses along your chest. You were his everything, all that would ever matter. The moment the words leave his mouth, Jihoon hears you suck in a breath and your body trembles under him, drawing his eyes upward. Â
Those had been the words that you had wanted to say to Jihoon earlierâthat you loved him. You were scared to say them. You were afraid that he would never love you and that youâd never been good enough for him and yet he said them to you first. Closing your eyes tightly, you feel the tears rising in your eyes as you try to keep them back but itâs impossible as you shake with a soft sob overwhelmed by sensations and emotions.Â
Moving up the bed, Jihoon shakes his head, cupping your cheek in his palm as he looks down at you concerned as tears run from the corner of your eyes. He worries at first that you are hurt or that heâs upset you, but then he sees your smile and it almost breaks him. âBabyââ
âI love you, Jihoon.âÂ
God, he loved those words on your lips. They scared the shit out of him, but they were like hearing a true angel speak. Jihoon never deemed himself worthy of love. He didnât think that he was worthy of his parentsâ love or that of his friends, but when it came to you, he thought heâd never in his entire life earn those words. Something about those three little words changed Jihoon, but for now he simply kissed your smile and then each of your cheeks wiping the tears from your face. âYouâre my heart, Y/N. I swear I wonât make you regret those words.â
Sighing happily, you run your fingers through Jihoonâs damp hair as his lips begin to once again move along your jaw and down your neck. You felt in your heart that he wasnât lying to you. For the first time, it truly felt like you had your husband in your arms and he was taking his time and making you his.Â
Carefully working the rest of your dress from your body, Jihoon winces, seeing how badly he really ruined the dress before he drops it into the floor as you laugh under your breath at his reaction. âIâm serious, a thousand, ten thousand more dresses just like it.âÂ
You want to say somethingâa smart comeback about how he should get you dresses for the damage done to that one, but any care you have for that dress leaves your head as you watch Jihoonâs fingers run along your thigh, urging you to spread your legs. You find yourself suddenly nervous once again as Jihoon meets your eyes and takes a deep breath when he moves them between your legs, seeing just how wet you are.Â
âIâI donât think I properly apologized for how things happened last time. That isnât how anyone should treat you, but especially not your husband.â Watching you furrow your brows and start to shake your head, Jihoon lifts his free hand to stop you as he massages your inner thigh with his other hand. âItâs not an excuse, and I will never use it as oneâI simply want to explain so that we are cautious in the future. When I am close tâto shifting like I was that evening, I amââÂ
You watch Jihoon struggle with his words, having to take in deep breaths. You wonder if heâs ever explained something like this to someone else before realizing he hasnât, that heâs never let himself get so close to someone. Moving to sit up, you slide closer to Jihoon, letting him rest between your legs as you run your fingers over his face, feeling him lean into your touch. âIâm listening and Iâm not going anywhere, Jihoon. I love you.âÂ
He didnât deserve you. God, how did you exist? Smiling, Jihoon turns towards your palm, kissing it gently before muttering that he loves you too and letting out a breath before continuing. âThe beast makes me angryâaggressive and stupid. It would be wise if we were more careful about things like this if Iâm close to shifting. Does that make sense?âÂ
Meeting Jihoonâs eyes, you run your thumb over his cheekbone as you nod, almost trying to memorize the color of his dark brown eyes as you think back to the golden of the beastâs eyes. âYes, but I trust you. I also donât want you to ever lock yourself away again, Jihoon. We do this together, forever. Do you understand? Donât ever keep this from me again.âÂ
The thought of that terrified Jihoon more than anything. He was so afraid that he might hurt you or worse. You were more important to him than anything else in his life and he had a feeling that the beast knew that. The beast enjoyed taking things from himâor at least thatâs what it felt like. Swallowing hard, Jihoon reluctantly nods, agreeing before leaning to meet your lips in a tender kiss, feeling you smile against it.Â
Humming softly into the kiss, Jihoonâs tongue sliding along yours, you let him ease you back on to the bed, feeling the pillow under your head. Legs tangle with one another as his hand slides along your side, along your hip, and down to your knee before Jihoon pulls it up to his hip so he can nudge his cock between your legs.Â
âAhâŠâ Excitement and arousal wash over you. Leaning your head back, you open your eyes, meeting Jihoonâs, biting your lip, wondering when he is going to finally put himself into you, only for confusion to the place of your excitement as he eases back. âNo⊠wait? Jihoon, I thoughtââÂ
âWe are, baby. You arenât ready. You said Iâm your first.â Speaking between kisses along your jaw and neck, Jihoon lowers his eyes between your legs as he takes a steading breath, preparing himself more than you before he brushes his fingers over your wet folds. âIâd rather die than hurt you again, mon ange. Keep your leg up for me and if anything hurts, tell me.âÂ
Holding tightly to his bicep, you whine Jihoonâs name when you feel his index finger slowly ease into you. The feeling is familiar but unlike last time, there is no pain. This time you find yourself clenching around Jihoonâs finger. âMmmâŠâÂ
Smirking to himself, Jihoon nods to your reaction before carefully pushing his finger in deeper, feeling your hand tighten on his bicep as you moan. He pictures you in your bed making those noises and wonders if youâve put your own small fingers inside yourself like this, knowing theyâd never reach as deep as he can. âGood? How about this?â Curling his finger back towards his palm, Jihoon watches as you arch your back, your mouth falling open with a breath. âBeautiful.âÂ
You wanted more. This was what you had expected and what your cousins had told you that you might expect in the bedroom with a husband. You knew that some marriages werenât blessed with sex lives to be envied; at this moment, you felt like yours was. There was no way that there could be anything better than this. There was no way there was anyone better than Jihoon.Â
âIâm going to add another finger, darling.âÂ
Bracing yourself, brows furrowed, you nod only to moan Jihoonâs name, feeling yourself stretch around his index and middle fingers. It wasnât as if you hadnât touched yourself before. You had made yourself orgasm several times in your life, but never had you felt this good. Never had you felt yourself stretched around fingers like you were now and that only brought you back to what you knew would come next as you felt Jihoonâs cock brush against your thigh. It was much thicker than two of his fingers. How would you ever handle that?Â
âYou are doing so well. So pretty.â Using his thumb, Jihoon draws small circles on your clit, watching you lift your hips as you feel the pressure beginning to build in your stomach. He had watched women cum before; he had even seen you do it once before, but there was something special about this. He was seeing you with clear eyes and you were divine. âYou can let go. Cum for me, baby.âÂ
Your nails dig into Jihoonâs skin and yet he doesnât flinch or seem angry with you as deep red marks appear on his skin when you cum around his fingers. Gasping his name, you push your hips down over his fingers and ride out your orgasm, daring to meet his eyes before throwing your head back with a breathy moan.Â
Kissing the corner of your lips, Jihoon eases his fingers from you, feeling you clenching around them as he does. Despite his cock twitching and leaking on to your leg, he doesnât rush you this time; instead, Jihoon brushes his fingers over your head and whispers softly against your skin as you come down from your orgasm. âYouâre perfect. Love you so much, Y/N... Take your time, baby. Shh⊠Iâm not going anywhere. Have all the time in the world.â
Though you didnât want to wait, you could feel your thighs shaking as you fought to catch your breath. Any fears you had that Jihoon would rush out the door, leaving you alone and wanting were distant, as you felt like you were drowning in him now. Every word and brush of his lips against your skin or lips had not only made you feel like you were able to take your time but also more confident. Finally, once you couldnât stand the growing arousal in you taking back over, you whined Jihoonâs name, feeling his lips pull up into a smile against your cheek as his fingers brushed over your lower stomach.Â
âHm, what is it, baby? Why are you whining for me?â Jihoon knew that you were still his innocent flower, his perfect little angel of a wife and while every bone in his body was begging him to take you and ruin you for anyone elseâhe had to hear you ask for it. Holding your chin between his thumb and forefinger, Jihoon meets your pretty eyes as he feels your leg run along the outside of his thigh, your wet pussy pressing against his thigh, causing a groan to bubble up in his throat that he just barely manages to keep silent as he waits for you to speak. âWhat do you want from your husband?âÂ
The confidence that you had managed to build was waning, but you could see the look in Jihoonâs eyes and you somehow knew that he was going to make you follow through with his words. Glancing downward, you let your bottom lip jut out slightly, causing Jihoon to laugh under his breath as he watches you until you do finally speak. âI wantâJihoon, please? Take me.âÂ
You were being so sweet and soft. Your cute bottom lip sticking out at your pouted, but then you said those words and all amusement left Jihoon just like the breath in his lungs. He wanted to take you. While he never wanted to possess you like the beast did, there was a sense of pride that you were his wife and in his bed. He was lucky enough to have this claim to you and heâd be a fool not to act on it.Â
Groaning under his breath, Jihoon nods before nipping at your jaw and hearing your breath get caught in your throat. The sounds leaving your mouth spur him on and have his hands once again trace the curves of your body, learning very dip and valley as he settles himself back between your legs. âFuckâyouâre⊠God, youâre soââ Shaking his head, unable to think straight, Jihoon practically whines, feeling your soft folds against his cock as he holds himself steady. âPlease tell me you love me again.âÂ
Feeling the head of his cock bump against your clit, you gasp out Jihoonâs name before he grips your ass with his free hand, pulling your hips closer to him and lining himself up with you, waiting for you to do as he asked. It wasnât a command or difficult task; it was asking you to do something as simple as breathing. âI love you, Jihoon, so much.âÂ
Neither of you were really prepared for how you would feel when Jihoonâs cock began to ease into you for the first time. You had never felt such an intense stretch like it in your entire life, and Jihoon was barely hanging on by a thread as he felt you clench down around him like a vice every single inch for what seemed like hours. He wasnât going to rush you, but as he tried to allow you the time to adjust and get used to the feeling of him inside of you, Jihoon felt like he was going to explode.Â
âBabeâbaby⊠You are so tight. You have to try to relax for me, okay? ShhâŠâ Brushing his thumb along your cheek, Jihoon meets your eyes, watching you nod along with his words as you make your best attempt to relax, allowing him to finally breathe when his hips settle against yours. âFuck, there you go. Such a good girl. You okay? You let me know when youâre ready.âÂ
âOkay, oh my god.â You had been right when you wondered how you would fit all of Jihoon inside of you. Even as he lay between your legs and you felt yourself tightening around him, you were having a hard time comprehending it.Â
The pain at first had been overwhelming, but now you were beginning to feel restless even as Jihoonâs fingers caress your skin and draw small invisible shapes along your chest and breasts to distract you. None of it is enough to stop you from wanting more and instinct kicks in, causing you to lift your hips, letting you watch a look of pleasure cross over Jihoonâs face as his eyes close and his lips part with a groan as you use your body like you had your hand earlier. âPlease?âÂ
Anything you wanted. Jihoon would give you the moon and the stars. He would climb to the top of the palace and stand on the roof to pluck them out of the sky and bring them down one by one for you if you asked him to. Doing thisâmaking love to his wifeâJihoon was more than happy to do.Â
Lacing his fingers with yours, Jihoon presses your hand to the bed with the first swallow thrust of his hips, watching your mouth fall open with a choked moan. There was no way he was going to last long, but heâd rather die than cum without feeling you let go around his cock. He had denied himself for so longâhe had denied youâthat this was more than about just fucking you; it was about the pleasure he was determined to give you and to make you remember that he was the only one whoâd ever make you feel this way.Â
âJiâJihoonâŠâ Tears fall over the rims of your eyes as Jihoonâs hips meet yours harder, his head buried in the crook of your neck. You had dreamt of pleasure like this but never thought it would be real until this momentâuntil Lee Jihoon. Digging your nails into his lower back, you press your head back into the pillow, gasping out a moan and arching your back, feeling the familiar pressure building with each of Jihoonâs deep thrusts. âKiss me? Please kiss me, Jihoon.âÂ
The moon and the stars. Tightening his fingers on yours, Jihoon kisses your neck and groans your name before walking his kisses up to your lips, claiming them once again when you ask for something. He could feel himself barreling over the edge, his climax teetering on a precarious edge, but still determined to feel you first, Jihoon shifts his body closer to you, listening to you whine loudly against his lips as he pushes your leg up towards your stomach so he can bury his cock into you hard. âCome on, mon ange. Give it to me...âÂ
Jihoon sounds desperate and breathless against your lips; his thrusts are sharp and irregular as he gets exactly what he wants when you fall apart for him. Gasping for a deep breath, you find it impossible when your orgasm rips through you, causing your thighs to shake around Jihoonâs body. Resting his forehead against yours, Jihoon groans your name, feeling himself unable to hold back cumming hard into your warm pussy as you milk him dry.Â
Both of you are silent beside your breaths for a few moments. Your bodies are tangled and unmoving as cum begins to seep from you and to the bed under you, making you feel sticky. It is Jihoon that moves and speaks first when he kisses your cheek and then your lips, unwilling to separate from you even as his cock softens inside of you, allowing more of his cum to escape. âMy beautiful wife.â
Laughing under your breath, you turn your face from Jihoonâs kisses, feeling your cheeks burning at his attention even as he turns you back towards him, capturing your lips for a longer kiss and letting you sigh into it. You find yourself happy and sad all at once, your bottom lip once again sticking out slightly, making Jihoon lean back to look down at you before finally slipping himself from you and moving to your side, pulling you into his arms.Â
âWhy are you sad? What did I do?âÂ
Quickly shaking your head, you turn on your side, pulling one leg over Jihoon's, enjoying the feeling of his fingers on your skin. âNothing, Iâm notâitâs not sadness, Jihoon. ItâsâIâm not sure what it is. Regret?â Seeing Jihoon furrowing his brows, you pat his chest and sit up slightly, trying to correct yourself. âNo, no, wait. Not like that. Regret that we didnât figure this out sooner. How much of our relationship we have already missed out on because ofâsomething you canât be a fault for.âÂ
Wrapping his fingers around yours, Jihoon brings them to his lips, kissing them and speaking against them slightly muffled even as he sighs into his words. âYouâre the only person who has ever truly made me feel like perhaps the curse isnât my fault. Iâve always felt I earned itââÂ
âJihoonââÂ
âLet me finish, mon ange.â Kissing your fingertips again, Jihoon smiles against them. âI know I was born like this and that the curse was put on my parents. I logically know that. That has never mattered until I met you. Every other woman hasâwell, you know.â Sighing, Jihoon laughs almost in disbelief at his own words as he shakes his head, putting your hand on his chest over his heart. âYou make me feel like perhaps Iâm not even cursed at all. How could I be if I have you?âÂ
Jihoonâs words cause your chest to tighten and for tears to sit on the rims of your eyes as you feel his heart beat steadily in his chest. You canât imagine a life without himâa cursed life or not. âYou arenât, my love. You are just Jihoon. You are just my husband.âÂ
For the first time in Jihoonâs life, he believes those words in his heart and the rumbling is silent as you kiss him, whispering that you love him against his lips.Â
22
Four days of ignorant bliss. It had been a honeymoon phase.Â
Jihoon had spent days and nights in your arms, but now he could feel the hair standing on the back of his neck even as you laid your head in his lap reading your book. He knows he should tell you that he is going to shift, but the shame overwhelms him.Â
Promises had been made about this. He had told you that the two of you would deal with things together, but how could he do that when he looks at your now and sees the scars on your thigh? He can see the way his claws ripped through your perfect skin and left such angry marks? NoâJihoon has to keep you safe.Â
Jihoon waits until you are asleep. His fingers tremble as he brushes your hair from your beautiful face before he lifts you and lays you back in bed and he listens to the angry rumble in the back of his head. The beast is angry with him. Why was it so angry? Why was the beast longing after you? That terrified Jihoon. He had to get away from you.Â
Stumbling out of the room, Jihoon groans under his breath in pain, making his way towards the front of the palace to the doors when someone stands in his way at the doors. Lifting his golden eyes to Wonwoo, Jihoon sighs out a ragged breath and gestures to the door. âOpen it and move, Wonwoo. I donât want to hurt you or anyone else. I couldnât live with myself. Please.âÂ
âNo, sire.âÂ
Confused, Jihoon puts a hand to his stomach, feeling his muscles beginning to tear from the inside out. Letting out a pained groan, Jihoon takes a step forward, trying to get to the door himself, only to feel Wonwooâs hand on his shoulder pushing him back with surprising strength. âFucking move, Wonwoo! You know I donât haveâI donât have time! Why are you doing this to me?!â Â
âWhy did you lie to her?âÂ
Falling towards Wonwoo, Jihoon coughs, tasting blood in his mouth from the muscles shifting internally. Though he is still confused, he pushes past the steward harder, managing to open the door and fall to the ground at the steps and Wonwooâs feet as the man looks down at him. âWhaâwhat the fuck are youââ Lying? He hadnât told you that he was going to shift. Had Wonwoo been spying on the two of you? Furious, Jihoon glares at Wonwoo before letting out a painful growl as his back arches, the bones snapping.Â
âYou lied to her, Jihoon. You had made so much progressâyou were changing.âÂ
Scratching at the marble under his fingers, Jihoon spits the blood from his mouth and turns his head back up to Wonwoo. âWhat the fuck? Are you spying on us?âÂ
âYouâre smarter than that, Jihoon. ThinkââÂ
âJihoon!â You had woken up to the sounds of pained yowling and only one thing had made sense. With tears in your eyes, you run towards the door,, seeing Jihoon lying across the steps in the middle of shifting, fear evident in his eyes as he looks around, shocked and confused.Â
âNoâWonwoo, send herââ Looking for Wonwoo, Jihoon is stunned to not see him standing over him anymore; he only sees you as you rush forward, falling to your knees in front of him This was the worst thing that could happen. He was dangerous during his shift and the beast would kill you; he couldnât trust himself and yet you were looking at him like you always did. You werenât afraid of him; why werenât you afraid? âY/N, please go away! Baby, please!âÂ
Shaking your head, you sob Jihoonâs name, moving closer even as his body breaks and reforms in front of you. You knew that you should be afraid, but you couldnât. You had promised to take care of him and you werenât going to go back on it. âNo! I love you. I wonât leave. Iâm here, Jihoon. I trust you!âÂ
Jihoon cries out in pain, his fingers breaking one by one before claws begin to take their place. He meets your eyes, able to shake his head before everything goes to black and nothing is left but the beast. Blowing out a deep breath into a growl, Jihoon opens his eyes and scratches at the floor under him, feeling the marble cracking until he meets your eyes. You should be terrified. You should be screaming, but you arenât.Â
âIâm here. IâmâJihoon, Iâm not afraid of you and Iâm not leaving. I love you.âÂ
The words seem foreign and impossible, but even as something fights him, telling him that you are lying to him, Jihoon keeps his eyes on you, listening to you tell him that you love him over and over again as you lift your hand, putting it against his face. He could so easily kill you. Tear you limb from limb, but he canât and he wonât. Falling down in front of you, Jihoon lets out a loud breath, resting his large head in your lap, feeling your shaky hands run over the thick fur. Â
At first, Jihoon falling into your lap scares you. You worry for a moment that he might get up and capture you in his large jaws, but after a few moments, you begin to wonder if heâs fallen asleep as you run your fingers over his head, listening to him breathe steadily. Tears drip from your cheeks and down on to the top of Jihoonâs head, soaking into the fur before you manage to lift your free hand, wiping them away, feeling relief wash over you.Â
âYou lulled man and beast, madame.âÂ
Furrowing your brows to hear a voice so close and having not heard any footsteps, you look up surprised to see Wonwoo standing against the doorframe with a slight smirk on his lips. You were used to seeing him in the same suit every day. He was a man of routine and he rarely surprised you, but tonight he looked completely different. He looked almost ethereal in his long black cape and his eyes full of mirth.Â
âWhâI? What? What are you doing out here?âÂ
Undoing his cape, Wonwoo grins at you as you feel the weight in your lap lessen, drawing your eyes down to Jihoon and causing your mouth to fall open in shock. Where the beast had been just moments before now lay your husband, his eyes fluttering as if he were simply dreaming, his body shivering from the cold.Â
âIâve grown weary, madame. Here, allow me.â Leaning to put the cape over Jihoon like a blanket, Wonwoo meets your eyes and you notice the subtle golden color to them before he stands back to his normal height to look up at the night sky. âYouâve done so much in your short time in Aetherial Grove.âÂ
Still confused, you watch Wonwoo closely while trying to keep Jihoon covered, feeling his fingers holding your dressing gown tightly at your thigh as he dreams. âWhat do you mean? WhoâWhatââÂ
Smiling to himself at your half-asked questions, Wonwoo glances towards you and nods. âWho and what indeed. A smart queen for an unselfish king. Quite the pairing.â You watch as Wonwoo lifts his hands and turns towards you and Jihoon, a playful look on his face. âWhen our dear king does wake, tell him that I am grateful for his generosity and that he allowed me to stay for as long as I wanted.âÂ
As if realizing something, you open your mouth, seeing Wonwooâs eyes almost sparkle at your recognition. âYouââÂ
Bowing at his waist, Wonwoo meets your eyes and sighs. âFarewell, madame. Blessings on the king and his queen for many years to come.â Turning to walk away, you hear him laugh under his breath before he whispers just loud enough for you to hear. âPerhaps Iâll visit again one day.âÂ
Stunned and uncertain what to say or do, you watch Wonwoo as he moves towards the golden gates. You wait for him to push them open only to watch as he seems to vanish just before reaching them, just a shimmer of gold dissipating into the air where he once was.Â
In your lap, Jihoon groans under his breath, shifting under the cloak, finally managing to open his eyes, looking up at you. The confusion is clear on his face, but as he blinks, looking around as if expecting something to happen, you can almost see something becoming clear to him.Â
âHow?âÂ
Lifting your hand to your lips and realizing that the curse is truly broken, you canât stop the sob before it leaves you. Jihoon, still confused, looks at the cloak around him before moving closer to you, trying to keep you warmer as you try to speak between sobs, trying to explain what had happened even though you know it doesnât make sense. Â
Though Jihoon doesnât completely understand, he pushes the tears from your cheeks and nods along, letting it sink in. Wonwoo had been in his life for as long as he could remember. His father had never explained where the steward had come from, and Jihoon had never asked. He remembered his father and Wonwoo having a difficult relationship as well as a close friendship, but now as you tried to explain who he really was, it all began to sink in.Â
His father had been a selfish king and in his own way, so had Jihoon. He had thought by keeping everything to himself that he was protecting everyone around himâhe had been protecting you, when in fact he had been hurting you more. It took letting someone in and letting them stay to break the curse. Just like letting Wonwoo stay until he was ready to go.Â
In the end, it all led Jihoon to you and now he would never let you go.Â
His wife. His queen. His heart.Â
READ THE BONUS ON PATREON

© onlymingyus - all rights reserved. Reposting/modifying of any fic, or pieces of original writings posted on this blog is not allowed. Translations not allowed.
#woozi smut#seventeen smut#jihoon smut#svthub#svt smut#woozi angst#seventeen angst#svt angst#jihoon angst#woozi fluff#seventeen fluff#svt fluff#jihoon fluff#woozi x reader#seventeen x reader#svt x reader#jihoon x reader
612 notes
·
View notes
Text
đčđč"weeeeeelcome to 'the worst dating show in hsr'! i'm your host, angelesca(no one caresđ), and today, we'll find out who will be your lucky valentine's date this year, based on a crappy personality test~" ft. the victims candidates: mydei, dan heng, stelle n' caelus, and phainon!
rules:
for each question, decide which applies to you most - remember to keep tally of the letters you choose (will determine your valentine's date~)!
other notes:
total of 9 very unoriginal questions
five endings (who you end up with!đ) + a song to match from my trash playlist!
this is a post meant for fun! my headcanons will not line up with everyone else's, but hopefully i didn't do them too badđ
mentions of hugging and kissing, but nothing beyond thatđ
the game show is about to begin! lights, camera, action!
thanks for deciding to take part in the game! let's start with the first question:
Q1] pick a season!
a] winter
b] summer
c] spring
d] autumn
Q2] what's your fav food/most likely to eat?
a] noodle soup, phá», ramen
b] spicy, hot wings, mala hot pot, or foods with acquired tastes
c] cake, biscuits and tea/cookies and milk, parfaits
d] whatever is convenient, or you don't have much preference
Q3] plan your ideal valentine's date!
a] dining out, relaxing spa day/museum trip, shopping spree
b] amusement park, arcade, photo booths and cute accessories
c] going for a drive, stargazing, cosy picnic with fairylights
d] staying in, watching a film under blankets, playing boardgames
Q4] choose a valentine's gift!
a] flowers and chocolates
b] stuffed animal
c] jewellery
d] handwritten poem/letter
Q5] what's your fav trope out of these?
a] forbidden love/star-crossed love
b] childhood friends to lovers/soulmates
c] rivals (or enemies) to lovers/opposites attract
d] fake dating/workplace romance
Q6] pick an ideal love language for your partner!
a] words of affirmation
b] gifting
c] physical touch or acts of service
d] quality time
Q7] what are the most important qualities you look for in a partner?
a] outgoing, flirty, romantic!
b] quirky, humorous, spontaneous!
c] headstrong, loyal, protective!
d] intelligent, calm, reliable!
Q8] there's a pink cupcake on the table. how do you eat it? (help im running out of ideas)
a] the conventional way, unwrapping it and using your hands to eat. nothing fancy
b] twist it in half and stack it so you can eat it like a burger
c] with a knife and fork, or chopsticks, anything to not make a mess
d] remove the frosting and eat just the cake, or eating them separately
Q9] lastly, pick a cheesy and cringey pick-up line! (that i totally didn't steal from the internet)
a] "remember me? oh, that's right, i've only met you in my dreams."
b] "my love for you is like diarrhea, i just can't hold it in!"
c] "i'm not good at holding conversations. can i hold your hand instead?"
d] "forget hydrogen. you're my number one element."
âïž if you got mostly a's... đ©đĄđđąđ§đšđ§ is your valentine's date! âȘâ« angel - alice phoebe lou âȘâ« extroverted, easygoing, well-liked by everyone! flirty, romantic, always planning dates like they are anniversaries. any praise will make him shy despite his confidence, lots of blushing. gentleman fr, loves hand-holding, guides you softly with his hand on your lower back, will not kiss you first - only when you want to initiate it! will get clingy if you two are separated for some time, sends teleslate messages every morning and likes using cute puppy stickers. compliments you at every corner, makes you feel like you're in the centre of his universe, looooots of affirmations of his love for you! but behind all the smiles and extravaganza, hides secrets and a pained past unveiled... keep an ear open to let him know you're there for him!
đ if you got mostly b's... đ°đ±đąđ©đ©đą đđ«đĄ đ đđąđ©đČđ°/trailblazer are(is) your valentine's date! âȘâ« it was love - yena âȘâ« there's never a dull moment! spontaneous, adventurous, hard to predict their next moves. loves to make you laugh, expressive, will make a fool out of themselves, always goes along with your ideas and jokes, will heal your inner child! loves clinging to your arm, crawls into your bed at night. looooves gifting you! almost always a box in front of your door, filled with trinkets and gadgets that reminded them of you (was it found in a trashcan? welllll it's the thought that counts, right?). all their medals gained from trailblazing are given to you just to impress you! hoards all your gifts, their room might as well be yours. clumsy, never dated before so this is a new journey for them. make sure to tell them if they accidentally upset you! they're willing to learn and understand.
đ· if you got mostly c's... ÊÊÉÉÉš is your valentine's date! âȘâ« honey - porch light âȘâ« an undying loyalty, his exterior seems tough, some bickering and competition at the start, but he eventually melts, a passionate love behind closed doors revealed to you only. small and quiet gestures like making you walk the inside of the pavement, carrying heavy baggage, always helping you even if unprompted. will send anyone who wrongs you into orbit, never to return. unexpectedly touchy, makes up for his lack of words probably - loves giving back hugs, kisses all your moles, freckles, scars if you have any, hugs you when sleeping, some affectionate biting, worships your body. likewise, loves when you reciprocate. miiiiight get overprotective and possessive, but it's only because he's afraid to lose you someday. bro needs your reassurance. and head rubs too.
đ if you got mostly d's... đčđ¶đ đœđđđ is your valentine's date! âȘâ« blue salvia - PRYVT âȘâ« pragmatic and reliable. once you get to know him, he becomes more comfortable! his tail will hug every part of your body, uses it to pull you closer, rests your head on his shoulder, and tell you some of his dry humour jokes. always giving you his undivided attention - puts down everything to listen to you, silence is not uncomfortable or awkward for you two, greatly respects your personal space. really loves watching you be passionate about hobbies, work etc.! will sit with you and help if you have a hard task at hand. will research all your interests in depth, notes down your favourite things in his notebook, eventually knowing it by heart. communication can be stiff sometimes, just remember to be honest and open with each other.
đčif you got no dominant answer (e.g. there's a tie) ... well... that's depressing- uuuh, is that ar-argenti?? he says he's very sad to be left out on valentine's day, so you two can pair together? oh, nice! he's already reserved a restaurant for the both of you. huh? a wreath of 999 roses and a statue in honour of your excellence is on it's way to you?! (alternatively, you can pick whoever you like most out of your results!)
i'd love to know who you guys got!!!â„ïžâ„ïžâ„ïž(i got ma boi dan hengđ[dh gang assemble here!])
a/n: literally felt like a couple therapist writing thisâïž anw happy early valentine's!! I MADE IT ON TIME YAAAAAY!!!!! this one is going in with my halloween gangđ if you enjoyed this, lemme know! maybe i'll make more in the future and other minigames? i have one more draft brewing in my lab, a very special one heeheehe. will prob post soon! thanks for playing! đ
#i butchered these characters didnt i#im gonna stuff myself with chocolates mmmmm#honkai star rail x reader#hsr x reader#mydei x reader#dan heng x reader#trailblazer x reader#phainon x reader#buuu so many tags do i really need them all buuuu#angie's crayon drawings!
290 notes
·
View notes
Text
Autographs
Fandom: Ted Lasso
Pairing: Jamie Tartt x GN!Reader
Summary: Youâre the social media manager for AFC Richmondâs socials. Youâve been seeing a trend of asking players for their autograph so you decided to try it out with your team.
Ted Lasso Masterlist
You hold your phone up as you peek into the locker room. All of the boys are dressed so you enter with a grin on your face. You keep a stack of papers close to your chest as you quickly head into Coach Beard's office.
"Hey, coach, training doesn't start for another thirty minutes, right?"
Beard checks his watch and nods, "Affirmative."
You nod, "Cool. I'm going to film some content for the socials then," you turn to Roy, starting with you. You press record and hold out a picture to him, "Can I get your autograph, coach?"
"Fucking hell," Roy grumbles as he sees a younger version of himself staring back at him, "Where the fuck did you find this?"
"Did some digging. Love the curls, by the way," you hold out a marker and Roy glares at you. He still scribbles out his name on the photo, handing it back to you, "There. Now fuck off."
You snicker, "Thanks a bunch!"
You exit the office and zero in on your boyfriend, Jamie. You waltz right up to him with giddiness. He smiles up at you as he finishes lacing up his boots. He stands and pecks your lips, "What's with the look, babes?"
You hold out a picture of a small Jamie posing on a pitch, "Can I have your autograph?"
His brows shoot up in surprise, "No fuckin' way. Where'd you find this?"
"I asked your mom to send me a pic of when you were little."
He chuckles, "Look at me. A sexy lil thing, aren't I?" You snort and hand him the marker. He signs his name and draws a heart, writing his initials and yours inside it. He caps the marker and hands it back to you along with the picture, "There ya go, babes."
"I'll cherish it forever."
You look down at your next photo and go up to Sam, who gives you a polite grin, "Good afternoon, Y/N!"
"Hi, Sam! Can I get your autograph?"
"Of course!" you hand him a picture of when he was a young teen and he laughs, "Oh my."
Jamie, who decided to follow you, reaches for the picture, "Aw look at you, Sammy boy!" Jamie shows all the boys Sam's picture and Sam bashfully chuckles.
"Alright, give it here, Jamie!" Sam swipes it back and signs his name. When he gives it back to you, he asks, "Where did you find this picture?"
"I scrolled through your old Facebook photos."
Sam sighs and shakes his head, "I knew I should've deleted those."
The next person you go up to is Colin. He's a small skinny thing, donning his primary school uniform, smiling widely.
Colin looks up at you in disbelief, "Did you reach out to my parents for this?"
You give a nonchalant shrug, "Maybe."
Each interaction with the boys went this way. Each one was surprised to see a picture of a younger version of them being handed to them. The surrounding players hollering and teasing each other for how they looked back then.
Jamie stood beside you the entire time, watching each interaction and just hanging around you. How could he not? He's always drawn to your presence. Not only that, he just adores how well you get along with the guys. You're sweet and funny, which makes it easy for them to say "yes" to whatever kind of video you want to film for the team's socials. You're very good at your job.
After all the photos are signed, you set them out so everyone can see. You stand back, watching the boys mess around with each other. You're already uploading the videos to your dropbox so you can edit them all together on your work computer.
Jamie wraps an arm around your waist and kisses your temple, "Must be nice getting paid to make fun of footballers," he says with a smirk.
You giggle, "So fun! Seriously so glad Keeley hired me on! Probably the most fun I've ever had in any job!"
"Also probably the best job ever since you get to hang around your hot footballer boyfriend too, yeah?" He gives you a playfully nudge.
You snort, turning to completely face him, your arms hooking behind his neck, "Oh absolutely," you lean in to kiss him but Roy steps in, pushing you two away from each other, "Get a room, you disgustingly cute little shits."
You look at each other confused, but then shrugged as Roy yelled, "Whistle! WHISTLE!" The gaggle of football players quiet and you quickly wave at Jamie. You blow a kiss at him and mouth, "I'll see you later."
He blows you a kiss back and waves, earning him a slap on the head from Roy.
"Oi! What the hell, gramps?"
"Pay attention!" Roy grumbles and turns his attention back to the rest of the players, ready to prepare them for today's training.
910 notes
·
View notes
Text
when you're forced to marry an alien himbo | đ
words: 5004 fem reader x male main character w / au's: alien!au, himbo alien, arranged marriage, getting off in front of him summary: you're a brand new bride to a himbo virgin alien warrior that is obsessed with making you happy:) a/n: i told myself i wouldn't repost ALL of my shitty stories again for the millionth time while i figure out what i wanna do with my life BUT i desperately wanna get inspiration for this AU again because it was SO FUN TO WRITE! so im posting it again and also i need to tell myself i can do whatever i want to be happy D': okay love you <3 there is another part to this hehe also this has nothing to do with the other alien au i posted recently... i was just in a mood late last year writing about hot aliens lol
âYou might want to have a seat when I tell you this, bestie.â You hear the impending doom in the tone of her voice coming in clearly through the speaker of your phone. âYouâre an alien bride.âÂ
As if things couldnât get any shittier for you.Â
You got fired from your job because you were running late due to your car breaking down. You couldnât afford to fix the part on your car because your bank account was overdraft due to your A/C breaking the week before. But itâs not like you could have even paid for the A/C when your boyfriend (now ex) broke up with you, drained your account for all he could, and took off with your sister to Vegas. Now youâre an alien bride thanks to the leaders of earth making a deal with the alienâs that they would protect all humans from the other invasive species of the universe if they send mateâs for the aliens in return.Â
âOr, is it an alien's bride? Are you an alien bride if youâre human and youâre marrying the alien? Or, like, are you the alienâs bride because youâre the alienâs? You belong to the alien. The alienâs woman? Either way⊠thatâs you, girl.â
The sound of your best friend rambling because sheâs scared shitless for you barely snaps you out of your daze.Â
âIs he rich, at least?â You sigh into the speaker. Whatâs one more weird and oddly specific thing that could go wrong? Just add it to the list. Alien, or maybe alienâs, bride? Check! âBecause that would solve half my problems, Sera, and honestly when youâre only adding one problem back in, it evens out. Girl math.â
âListen, you didnât hear it from me-â But, you did. Sera works for the earth-intergalactic species representatives resources department. This is the only reason youâre finding out about this now. Normally people are just snatched up from their homes to go off and breed ginormous alien babies. Or, at the very least, marry an alien. You arenât too sure on the specifics of what happens after that, but you have always been a little curious⊠âYour alien is a total hottie.âÂ
âWhat are you insinuating?â You gasp, part offended and part imagining how hot your alien husband-to-be actually is. âI just go up there and let this alien have his way with me to completely destroy me? I heard theyâre not gentle! Theyâre mean and rough and ugly. So, really, how hot could he be?â
âYouâve never even seen one of them before!â She begins to whisper, as if someone is coming closer that could hear and potentially get her fired, or worse. âLook, youâre one overdraft fee away from homelessness. Donât look at this as a bad thing. Youâve got no choice.â
You know sheâs right. What other choice do you have?Â
Youâre beamed up to the alien spaceship that hovers earth the following morning. Literally. Beamed up in a blink of an eye. One minute youâre on earth, the next youâre surrounded by cold, steel walls in a circular room with two bags of your things and your cat, Jellybean. Jellybean hisses at thin air as he looks around, clinging to your shirt like it's his lifeline. His orange fur begins to fly when you try to soothe him, all before a sliding door opening to the right, and in walks the dreamiest, most charming, hunkiest man that ever hunked.Â
Was this your alien husband-to-be? God, you hoped so. You were going to end it all if you havenât even left earth yet, knowing this divine specimen exists and you couldnât have a chance with him.
He clears his voice, a nervous smile on his lips, before he tells you his name. âIâm your husband.âÂ
Relief floods you. She was right. He is hot. Beyond hot. Your knees quiver as he steps closer, heart racing. As he walks into the yellow cast of the light overhead, you notice his brown, military style uniform, matching cap on his head, and black boots. Of course, all the aliens are trained soldiers well respected across galaxies for their skills in combat. Itâs why earth so happily accepted their protection. They needed to remain safe, and the aliens needed mates.Â
Jellybean hisses again to pull you away from the thoughts roaming. He looks down at the cat, then back to you. You expect him to be rude, mean even, maybe make an insulting comment, but he only smiles.Â
âWould you like to see our living quarters? Let your friend get something to eat and drink while we settle in?â
âS-Sure.â Okay, you werenât expecting that. Arenât these aliens supposed to be mean? Horrid? Rough? Terrible? Ugly?! So far he was none of these things. He doesnât even have a problem with Jellybean. Your ex hated Jellybean, but to be fair Jellybean hated him, too.Â
God, speaking of, has it really been that long since youâve been laid that youâre getting all hot and bothered over this alien just for being nice and not minding your cat? He leads you down corridors of metal until youâre suddenly thrust into a bustling living area full of other aliens and humans, lounges, TVs, little food carts with any option of burger, chicken wing, or pizza you could imagine. You name it, it was offered in those delicious smelling stands, though you wonder what kind of meat they used. Alien technologies are clearly far more advanced. Even their fauna was beautiful and ethereal looking, sparkling off the synthetic sun overhead while the koi fish in the ponds around them swam gracefully.
Though food and decor didnât keep your attention for long. A couple you walk past looks as lovey-dovey in love as one could be. Heâs much larger than her as she snuggles into his side while the two read the intergalactic news articles in the morning paper. She leans up and gives him a kiss on his cheek. As if she just couldnât help herself, and you really canât blame her either when you notice all of the aliens are pretty hot.
Not as hot as your alien, of course. Thereâs no alien like your husband.Â
âUm, husband?â You shuffle your feet quickly to reach his side, grabbing onto his arm with the hand that isnât holding Jellybean.Â
âYes, wife?â A shiver races down your spine at him calling you wife. God, were you really about to fall head over heels for an alien? The odds seemed likely. At this point, what did you have to lose? You only had everything to gain. Like a super hot, super attention and sweet alien husband who was no doubt packing downstairs.Â
âWhere exactly are we staying aboard this massive ship?â The alien spaceship was big enough to serve as a warning to the other space travelers to stay away, but also big enough to host every trained soldier from their home planet.Â
âJust down here,â he says, leading you out of the living area down a more lively looking hallway with plants and pictures of army captains. Then he stops down another hallway in front of a door seconds before it slides to the right. âRight in here.â He carries your two bags through the threshold into the most normal looking foyer you have ever seen. Ahead are even a set of stairs made from hardwood floor. To the right, a kitchen. To the left, a living room. A house that jumped straight out of a magazine. You expected the alien spaceship to look like something from Star Trek, and part of it does, but some partsâŠ
âThis looks soâŠâ
âHuman?â
âYes!â He chuckles at that, setting your things down while you let Jellybean out of your arms to go sniff everything. âWhy?â
âTo make our mates more comfortable. To feel more like home.â
You canât help your frown. âWhat if we donât want it to feel that way?â Your voice is a whisper as you take in the surroundings. Youâve never lived anywhere this nice. Itâs way too suburban, picket fence, three kids and a dog for you.Â
âIf the living arrangement is not to your standards, we can make changes.â Thereâs a frown on his face now. He actually looks disappointed you donât seem happy. You definitely hate that look.
âItâs great! No worries!â You offer him the biggest smile you can muster, watching his grin return. âSo, shall we get started?â you ask, beginning to take off your coat considering shoes were already left at the entrance. The coat falls to the floor before you begin unbuttoning your jeans.
âWh-what are you doing?â He blinks a few times before turning his head from you. âIf you needed to get changed, I could have stepped away.â He wonât look at you, so you stop fidgeting with your jeans.Â
âChanged? No, I meant sex and alien babies.â He snaps his head at your words. âIsnât that what Iâm here for?â
âYouâre here to be my wife.â
âYeah⊠which means sex and then having alien babies. Right?âÂ
He looks confused. Now you feel heat rushing to your cheeks. You quickly pick your coat from the floor, covering yourself to not feel as exposed from your embarrassment. Not like it would help. Heâs already eyed you up and down and back again at the mere mention of sex.Â
âIâm⊠not sure.â He looks down, rubbing the back of his neck. âWe were told marrying a human would give us strength, power. That what we receive from our mate would make us nearly invincible.â
Your jaw hangs open. âExcuse me?â You blink, taking a step toward him. âWhat the fuck are you saying?â
He gulps, not bothering to meet your eyes due to him cowering like youâre a foot taller than him. To be fair, you do have an intimidating gaze when things start to get complicated.
âBeing with a human means being powerful,â he repeats, though it doesnât make an ounce more sense. âWe were told our humans would teach us what we needed to know to be successful lovers.â
You choke on your own spit from the words, coughing. âSo being a good lover makes you more powerful?â You shake your head. âBeing with me⊠being a good lover⊠makes you more powerful?â Youâre squinting at him, no longer frustrated, but curious if heâs saying what you think heâs saying. If so, you have one hot himbo virgin on your hands and heâs in dire need of a sex lesson from you.Â
âYes, thatâs it.â He nods, finally looking you in the eyes.Â
âWell, you know what? My life sucks so what the hell? Whatever it is, alien husband, Iâm going to make you more powerful! And you know what else? My life could still suck but at least I donât have to go to work anymore and have Creepy Andy stare at my tits all day.âÂ
He frowns, anger spreading in his features. The shift in his demeanor is so sudden, it catches you off guard. âIs this Creepy Andy a problem?â
Oh⊠you like that. This alien is awakening something in you that makes you⊠horny? Scared? Maybe both. Heâs big, and dangerous, and from another planet and it kind of turns you on he is willing to do, well whatever he would do to Creepy Andy if you said yes. No human man has ever made you feel this way. This stirring of excitement and adrenaline mixed with fear of the unknown washing over you as he looks at you like he would eat you up and worship you. Of course, whatâs his has been threatened. From his tone, his posture, his words, you realize heâs a territorial man. So your hot himbo virgin alien is the jealous, protective type. Somehow you find him even more attractive.
âNot anymore,â you tell him, sighing, pouting, earning a little more of his attention which you realize you actually adore in the moment. He steps closer, placing hands on your arms. âI mean, it got pretty bad there for a while. He was always trying to flirt, and make weird comments about me, and just be creepy, you know?â
Okay, you didnât have to go into detail, but to watch your new alien husband get worked up over another manâs comments about your body does something to your confidence. This alien has claimed you for his keeping, and itâs clear no one else should dare to even look at you or this alien super soldier will not be so nice.
âWhere can one find this Creepy Andy?â
His question has you bursting into giggles. âDonât worry about it.â You reach to pat him on the chest, feeling the hard muscle underneath. âItâs not something I have to worry about anymore.âÂ
You pull away to go get Jellybean settled in while he takes your things upstairs. After a while of soothing Jellybean and coaxing him out of his hiding place under one of the lounges in the living room so he would eat something, your husband comes downstairs to offer you a cooked meal.
âYou cook?â
âSometimes.â His sheepish grin has butterflies swarming your stomach. How can he be so hot, and intimidating, yet cute? You follow him into the kitchen with the standard fridge and oven, with a sink and dishwasher close by. Looks just like something you would see on earth, if it werenât for the unique gadgets and interesting trinkets here and there. You assume they are alien created, and youâre curious how they work.
You guess a lesson on alien tools will have to be another day as he gets to work creating you a meal that smells delicious. He tells you itâs some sort of delicacy where heâs from, but you donât question it. You havenât eaten all day, too nervous about meeting him. So you take a bite, and to your surprise, itâs not half bad. Thereâs a few flavors you recognize in the dish, what look to be like noodles, and some kind of meat. You donât ask the questions you normally would. You donât want to spoil it if this is what you have to live with.Â
âWould you like to join me while I wash up?â he asks while taking the plates away to place them in the dishwasher. A man who cooks and cleans up? Youâve died and gone to heaven.Â
âWash up? As in⊠shower?â
âShower, bathe, whatever you wish to do.â
Itâs hard to turn him down when heâs being so generous. âS-Sure.â Though, you are a little nervous. Itâs been so long since youâve even seen anyone in their underwear. Better to go ahead and get the awkwardness out of the way. This is your husband, after all.Â
âI would love a bath. My muscles feel so tense from being nervous and I think I sweated so much from the anticipation of meeting you I would really like to wash up.â
Heâs smiling at your rambling. Okay, youâre a lot nervous. Not that you donât have confidence around men. You do and you enjoy taking charge and demanding what you want, but this is no ordinary man. This man is gorgeous, understanding, sweet, and kind. From out of this world. This man could have been written by a woman, maybe mother nature herself, and thatâs what is making you so nervous. Why does he seem so perfect? You were so convinced the aliens were mean, and rough, and ugly, but heâs shown you the opposite.Â
âCome with me,â is all he says before youâre following him up the stairs, down the hall into a room that looks more alien than human. The door slides to the ride to reveal marble steps leading to a dais filled with water. The platform sits low as a soft hum emits from the inviting bathing pool, lights glowing all around in alien markings you canât decipher.Â
âThis is simply gorgeous,â you sigh, taking in the purple and blue fauna all around the room. Steam rolls off the water, shimmering beneath the glowing markings.Â
âIâm happy it pleases you, I spent a while setting it up for you,â your big alien husband says, his tone giving him away that he could be blushing. âThis is where I can bathe you every night while worshipping your body in any way you see fit. It is one of the more intimate ways we can bond so you can share your gift with me, so I feared I might be rushing things, but I admit, I was excited to show you.âÂ
Youâre nearly brought to tears from the way he speaks to you as well as this steamy, inviting bathing pool heâs brought you to. Earth men could never.Â
âThank you,â you whisper a second before jumping into him. Your arms wrap around his neck while his hands pull you in closer. âNo one has ever been this nice to me or done something so sweet.â He took you away from at least half your problems, doesnât mind your cat, gave you a cozy, comfortable house to live in, cooked for you, built your own personal, lavish bathing pool, and wants to give you orgasms every night. Could your life get any better? You might have just fallen in love. Itâs not too soon if heâs an alien, right?Â
âWe donât have to do anything you donât want to,â he says, pulling away. âI just wanted to show you tonight, and if all we do is admire one another in our flesh then thatâs okay with me.â
Your heart swells. Could your husband get any sweeter? âNo, believe me, I want to.â Suddenly, youâre not feeling so shy. The confidence has returned in full force as you take your coat off once again, allowing it to fall to the floor.
âWell,â he sighs, rubbing the back of his neck and avoiding your eyes. âIf youâre sure youâre comfortableâŠâ
The mood shifts suddenly. You picked up on the tone of his voice, the uncertainty there.Â
âHey, are you alright?â You stop in the middle of unbuttoning your jeans once again, stepping to him to look into his eyes from below.Â
âI justâŠâ He lets out a breath and your heart sinks.Â
âWe donât have to do anything you donât want to do, either,â you remind him, reaching to give his hand a squeeze. âIâll admit, this whole situation is bananas, and the fact that I have a husband who is an alien is wild to me, but we donât have to rush anything just because thatâs what weâre supposed to do.â
He looks into your eyes, the subtlest of wrinkles between his brows. âItâs just⊠my whole life I was trained to be a soldier. Iâve spent well over twenty of your earth years testing my combat skills, my war knowledge, my stamina and wit and endurance. It wasnât until our last years in training did they talk about our need for a human mate from earth. I⊠I want to be a good mate to you, a good husband, because itâs important to both of our species survival, but I donât know how.âÂ
Tears finally do begin to well behind your lids as he speaks. The familiar tightness tugs behind your eyes, heart breaking into pieces. You only thought about how the situation makes you feel, not how your new alien husband would feel. You feel a little sick at the thought of disregarding him just because heâs not human. Of course he has feelings and boundaries.Â
âIâm sorry,â you exhale, shaking your head. His expression turns into confusion, brow wrinkling and lips parted. âI guess Iâm just used to the men Iâve been with and their ability to only speak with their dicks. This is the most adult conversation Iâve ever had. I donât know how many times I can say this, but earth men could never!âÂ
He chuckles as you speak, happy to see his smile return since heâs unbelievably beautiful when he does so. âI like the way you talk. Itâs funny.â
âFunny?â You raise a brow, but you canât stop yourself from grinning.Â
âIt makes me happy and I just want to keep smiling.â
Oh⊠he thinks youâre cute. Your stomach flip flops just the same as your heart.Â
âWhy donât we start as slow as both of us need to.â You step away from him, gesturing toward the bathing pool. âLetâs just bathe tonight.âÂ
He agrees and you both begin to take your clothes off. Thereâs hesitation in every motion and he canât stop stealing glances at you. Your jeans slide to the floor, his shirt follows. Piece by piece until youâre both naked before one another. His eyes travel down your body, taking in every enticing curve, every dip, every expanse of skin until heâs gulping. You take him in as well, the muscles twitching beneath your gaze, the smooth skin, the fact that his cock is half hard and growing as he looks at you. A big, thick, delicious looking cock that you arenât sure how is going to fit inside of you, but God do you want to try.Â
You donât want to stare for too long because you donât want to make him uncomfortable. If he was written by a woman, he was built by a God. Itâs hard to pull your eyes away, but you finally manage to make your way to the edge of the steamy pool. The water is crystal clear, noticing glowing markings on the bottom and sides of the pool. The blue, shimmery light guides you to step down into the water, taking each step slow until youâre submerged up to your ribs.Â
âHow does it feel?â His voice behind you earns your attention. You turn to face him, watching as he follows your steps into the pool. The water comes to his waist as the two of you slowly dance around one another, gliding in the water as the heat relaxes your body.Â
âFeels amazing. Like Iâm being massaged all over. And whatâs that smell?â
âHoney and rose. Comes from the water. The massage feeling is intentional due to the currents created from the vibrations in the walls.â
So thatâs where the hum comes from. Interesting. âThis is too cool, honestly.â You begin laughing, then he joins in. As if neither of you can believe the situation. All you can do is laugh.Â
Until his smile fades and the mood shifts. âCan I see you?â he asks, and at first youâre confused, until his eyes sweep down your body.Â
âDidnât you see when we undressed?â
âI want to see all of it,â is all he says, eyes traveling down once again, and landing on the little V between your thighs. Your heart skips a beat. Thereâs no way you can tell him no. Not when he looks like he wants to eat you like his favorite dessert, he just may be a little confused about what toppings he wants. Youâre willing to show him as you back up to the closest step to hoist yourself up onto the ledge of the bathing pool. His eyes are glued to you as you part your legs for him, giving him the perfect view of your pussy.Â
He licks his lips, eyes darkening. The mood has shifted entirely. Thereâs a heaviness between the two of you now. One of longing and desire. He may not know all the intricacies of sex, but itâs clear he wants to.Â
His exhale is heavy before he speaks. âPlease, teach me.â He huffs again, like heâs struggling with holding himself together. âTeach me what I can do to make you feel good.Â
You bite your lip for a second. âThey didnât prepare you for anything?â
âNot much. We got most of our knowledge from hearsay, though the basics were taught.â He takes another deep breath. âWe expect our partners to teach us, that way their needs are met. Itâs important to me for you to be pleasured properly. So, please, Iâm not asking you to give me a lesson, Iâm asking what makes you feel goodâŠâ
You inhale a sharp breath. The last thing you want to do is take things too far if he isnât comfortable. Though, now youâre wondering if he just isnât comfortable because he doesnât want to let you down. Thatâs why itâs so important to him for you to show him.
So your hand falls between your thighs to begin stroking the soft skin of your pussy. Feather light strokes earn his attention quickly, watching so you only play for a few seconds.Â
âIf it makes you feel better,â you begin, middle finger finding your clit to begin teasing yourself there, âIâve never done this with anyone before.â His eyes remain trained between your thighs, watching your finger softly circle your clit.Â
âYouâve never touched yourself in front of someone?â he asks, and you bite your lip while shaking your head. A grin forms on his lips. âIâm your first?âÂ
You nod, then sigh when you dip your hand lower, finger easing inside of yourself to feel how wet youâve become. Then you trace a line back to your clit, beginning to rub in slow circles once again.Â
âIâm getting so wet already,â you whisper as he takes a step closer. âIt must really turn me on when you watch me.â You donât consider what you tell him dirty talk. Itâs only the truth. Youâve never been watched like this. He takes another step toward you, and another, until heâs pressing his palms to the waterâs edge near each of your thighs.Â
âI hear itâs a good thing,â he says, looking between your pussy being pleasured and your head tossed back with lips parted. âIf you get wet for me, it means you are enjoying yourself, yes?â
âGod, yesâŠâ Your fingers dip again, easing inside of you as your hips begin to roll against your hand.Â
âHave you ever gotten this wet for anyone else?â he asks as his hand lazily falls onto your thigh, rubbing circles with his thumb. The added attention, even if so innocent and curious, adds to the pleasure, jolts of electricity surging from where he's touched you.Â
âI donât think so,â you tell him in a raspy breath, and once again, itâs the truth. Heâs a jealous alien, so he needs reassurance. You feel yourself dripping onto the edge of the pool. No oneâs ever made you this hot just by watching you. Normally you have to work hard to get yourself close, but you feel yourself on the edge of bliss within minutes. Slowing down, you bring yourself back in, wanting more than anything to make this moment last between the two of you.Â
âGood,â he groans, and it nearly brings you right back to the precipice of your orgasm. âI want to be the only one that gets to see you like this. Touching yourself. Dripping wet for me.â
âYes!â you cry out, falling back to lean on one hand as he grips your thighs, parting them wider for him to see. The other hand continues to work your clit in messy, quick circles. Your breaths deepen as soft moans escape your lips. Youâre getting close to the edge again just from the way he watches you touch yourself.Â
âThe noises you make are making my cock ache, baby,â he nearly growls, suddenly full of sexual frustration, but he keeps it together. Warmth floods your body from the pet name. Itâs never sounded so good coming from anyone elseâs mouth. âDoes it feel that good, or do you just enjoy me watching you touch yourself that much?â
âBoth,â you whimper seconds before the pleasure is bursting from between your thighs. You couldnât hold yourself off any longer, warmth surging through your body as the bliss takes hold. You cry out for him, reaching to wrap an arm around his neck and pull his body close as you ride out the pleasure. He takes hold of you, wrapping you up in his embrace until youâre coming down and catching your breath.Â
Panting, shaking, he holds you against his naked body for what feels like an eternity. He strokes your hair and back, pressing his lips to the top of your head.Â
When you pull away, you look him in the eyes, then your gaze falls to his mouth. âWill you kiss me?â you ask, and a darkness ignites in his eyes, the question fueling his evident desire for you. He leans in, pressing his lips to your own. Softly at first, just to feel each otherâs skin, then he leans in further. He takes hold of you and the moment, slipping his tongue past your lips to play, to tease. You canât help but moan against him, becoming lost in the very thing you swore was going to be terrible.Â
He finally pulls away from you to begin tending to you as he would if he were really bathing you. He washes your body with the softest cloth and the same smelling gel from a little vial he had prepared. While he washes you, he explores your body, taking his time to go over every inch until you begin to feel worked up again.
When youâre both clean, he helps you out of the pool to dry you off. You giggle at the ticklish spots and he laughs at your giggling. He already has a cozy looking pajama set prepared on the bed which you will share with him when he takes you to the bedroom.Â
When youâre dressed for bed, you snuggle between the sheets and he pulls you as close as he can to his body.Â
âGood night, wife,â he whispers, placing a kiss against your temple.
âGood night, alien husband,â you reply, smiling to yourself since it seems, not half, but all of your problems have disappeared because of him.Â
#self ship#fictional other#self shipping#f/o#smut#reader#x reader#reader insert#x you#fem reader#x you smut#female reader#x y/n#x y/n smut#smut fic#smut fanfiction#smut writing#imagine#drabble#monster smut#alien smut#monster fucker#monster x human
257 notes
·
View notes
Note
Hello!!! I have a request if thatâs okay with you. đ
Would you maybe write a Spencer x quiet!reader? Where she doesnât have the courage to talk to him because sheâs too shy?
I donât really have a plot in mind so thatâs up to you!! Iâm sorry I couldnât come up with any ideas but hopefully it lets you write whatever you want. Thank you for taking the time to read this. And I read your other stories, youâre so underrated and amazing I love your wording when you write. đ„čđ«¶đ»đ«¶đ»
Hi Mary!! Thank you so much for your kind words c:
I did my best c: I hope you like it!
Round Table (Spencer Reid x shy!gn!reader)
Pairing: Spencer Reid x shy!gn!reader (if not gn please let me know, but I'm fairly certain it is!)
Word Count: 1538
Warnings: mentions of anxiety, but besides that none?
A/N: this was so fun c: i am really enjoying challenging myself with your guys' requests. hope you enjoy!!
------
You were an incredibly anxious person, which, honestly, was okay. You tried not to let your anxiety hinder your life too much, but like any other human being, sometimes it got in the way. It was frustrating, sure, knowing that a situation would be so much easier if you werenât so anxious about it, but you reminded yourself often that you werenât perfect, and neither was anyone else.Â
Some people were afraid of heights, of the ocean, of needles. Some people had trouble going out into crowds or grew overstimulated in public places.Â
You? You were painfully shy. There was always an adjustment period to being around new people.
Baristas, the bus driver, pharmacy techs, cashiers at the grocery store - you did just fine. But those were one-time interactions, brief discussions that you could compartmentalize.Â
They came with a script to follow, with cue cards already queued up in your head as they occurred. You could put on an emotional mask for five minutes while the nurse at the clinic gave you a flu shot. You could smile and speak in your special voice labeled Getting Coffee, an octave higher than you usually spoke, in order to acquire your much-needed beverage. There was a clear goal in mind with each of these dialogues. Sure, you didnât present as the most confident person in the world, but you always made it through conversations like these without stumbling over your words or being too terribly awkward. Â
You didnât succeed as much with deeper connections, with ones that took time to cultivate. You were a guarded person to begin with, with only a handful of people you felt truly close to. Vulnerability had always been difficult for you, but you supposed you were in the majority on that front. It took a while to become comfortable around coworkers, extended family, hell, even your therapist. You had to have time to adjust, to settle in.Â
A lot of people in your life thought you were just socially awkward or even an agoraphobe, but you didnât mind being around people. It was the intimacy, the connection, the having to give away little pieces of yourself, that made you anxious. It kept you from participating in conversations most of the time, usually only speaking unless spoken to.Â
You liked your job as a linguistics and handwriting analyst in the FBI for that very reason. You didnât have to say much to people unless it was related to a case. With a clear goal in mind, a threat to neutralize, you could turn on that mechanical part of your brain that spouted off facts, information, theories. You didnât have to tell anyone about your weekend, about your hopes and dreams or your favorite foods.Â
You were consulting on a case for the Behavioral Analysis Unit - a serial killer who stalked his victims months before their murders, sending handwritten letters and using poetry to taunt them. Your supervisor had asked you to collaborate with the BAU, sending you to the sixth floor on your own.Â
For the last two days, youâd been working closely with Dr. Spencer Reid - Spencer, he insisted you call him. Just a couple of years older than you, but still very young for his role in the FBI. He was friendly, and very smart, and he rambled on about all kinds of things -Â
Everything, actually. The Chinese food youâd had for lunch on the first day? He explained the origin of fortune cookies. Did you know their first appearance in the US was in San Francisco in the late 1800s?Â
Pointing out a Dickinson line in one of the UnSubâs letters? Did you know only ten of Emily Dickinsonâs poems were actually published when she was alive and the rest were posthumous?Â
You often just nodded along and smiled, occasionally throwing in an oh, thatâs very interesting to appear as an active listener. And you were an active listener. You did genuinely think he was interesting, and you found his info dumps to be incredibly endearing. But your contributions to the conversation were abysmal in comparison.
Beyond discussing patterns in the UnSubâs letters and what it might mean for each victim, you had no other fascinating information to share. You didnât do well with small talk, and Spencer didnât ask you any overtly personal questions.Â
It wasnât until close to the end of the second day spent in the conference room of the BAUâs office that Spencer asked you a direct question about yourself.Â
There were three evidence boards set up, all full of scanned copies of the letters, each one pinned up meticulously by you and Spencer the day before. The large round table in the room had letters stacked out all around it, each one bagged in protective plastic.Â
Spencer was standing in front of the evidence boards with his arms crossed over his chest, studying the photocopies with his head inclined to the side.Â
He broke the silence you had been slowly settling into the past two days. âYour supervisor said you had a specialization in poetry?âÂ
You nodded, stepping over to the table and carefully lifting one of the letters up. You liked how he spoke as if you two were in the middle of a conversation, when in fact, it had been totally silent for the past half an hour, save for the soft puttering of the air conditioning vent.
âStudied a lot in undergrad,â you squeaked out, clearing your throat as you held the letter up the fluorescent light above you to examine the stationary.Â
âWhat university did you attend?â Spencer asked, and you turned your head to find him inclining his head to the side. He actually wanted to know?Â
âI went to Bennington College to study poetry,â you said softly, suddenly finding it difficult to focus on the letter in your hand. âBut I went to graduate school at Georgetown. Masterâs in Linguistics.âÂ
âReally? Thatâs fascinating,â Spencer commented, which caught you by surprise, especially because he didnât sound the least bit sarcastic. âThat combination of degrees is exceedingly rare. Generally people who major in poetry often either go on to complete as far up as a doctorate in the subject or  they stop at a Bachelorâs degree. The latter statistically donât end up working in a field related to poetry, either, so their degree is basically useless.âÂ
You werenât sure if you were supposed to be offended by that, so instead you just nodded your head politely. âOkay,â you murmured, biting your lip.Â
âCan I ask you another question?â Spencer asked, and set the letter in your hand down on the table. You smoothed your hands over the fabric of your shirt and nodded. âDo I⊠do I make you uncomfortable?âÂ
You shook your head. âNo,â you said assuredly, and then, a little more hesitantly, ââŠwhy would you ask me that?âÂ
Spencer turned to face you. âYouâre just very quiet unless weâre discussing the case. Which is fine, of course, but I just⊠I donât know. I thought maybe you were annoyed by me or I said something to offend you.âÂ
You felt guilt spread over you and your cheeks turned pink. The last thing youâd wanted was to make anyone feel bad who didnât deserve it. And the very kind, helpful, and adorable Dr. Spencer Reid was the furthest from deserving to feel bad.Â
 âI just donât talk a lot,â you tried to explain. Your hand rubbed the spot where the top of your chest met the skin of your neck, an anxious habit youâd had for years. âI mean, I do with people I know, and thatâs not to say I dominate the conversation by any means, but I justâŠâ you realized you were rambling. âYou didnât do anything wrong,â you added, your voice just above a whisper.Â
âThank you,â Spencerâs lips flickered into a straight-lined smile, one you had seen several times over the past few days, often when unintentional eye contact was made across the table. âFor clarifying, I mean, that I didnât offend you.â He cleared his throat, and leaned against the round table, standing just a few feet from you. Still a very professional and comfortable distance, but closer than he had been before. âSo, does that mean that if we got to know each other, youâd talk more?â The corners of his lips spread out and his smile grew.Â
You tore your eyes away from his to look at the letter in your hand, the protective plastic around it crinkling between your fingers. You werenât actually looking at the letter, though. Youâd just needed somewhere - anywhere - else to look. âThatâs generally how it goes,â you murmured, biting your lip.Â
âSo, if I were to, for example, ask you to meet me for dinner sometime, could the getting to know each other happen there?âÂ
Your eyes fluttered over to Spencerâs and you saw him smiling. You could tell by how he looked at you, with his head inclined just slightly to the side, that he was being fully serious. You nodded, unable to control the small smile on your face.Â
Spencer grinned, and you could tell he couldnât resist when he spoke again. âSo, is that a yes?âÂ
#spencer reid fanfic#criminal minds#spencer reid x reader#spencer reid#spencer reid x y/n#basketonthedoorstepofthefbi#criminal minds spencer reid#spencer reid fanfiction#spencer reid x you#spencer reid x gn reader#spencer reid fluff#spencer reid fic#spencer reid x self insert
767 notes
·
View notes
Note
can u (pls pls pls pls) do shin (sakadays) as a bf headcannons ........ thank u, sending u lots of love <3
HI DEAR!! tysm for your request đ
iâm soooo happy someone requested something for shin i love him sm heâs the loml and this was so fun to write./shin fans get ready for january 2025 cuz sakadays episode 1 means shin is going to appear !!
iâm sorry for any grammar mistakes but english is not my first language, iâm trying my best to improve!
đȘ· ; gn! reader, it is mentioned once that reader puts on makeup, Shin being the adoptive son of Taro and Aoi.
SHIN ASAKURA BF HEADCANONA

Did I just hear "best boyfriend ever"? Because Shin IS the best boyfriend ever.
With Shin being a clairvoyant, it was way easier for him to know if his love for you was unrequited or not.
But Shin is really unexperienced, he never had a serious partner or experienced any kind of strong love before he met you.
He even asked Sakamoto for advice! Isnât he the cutest??
During the first weeks of the relationship compliments were not his best card⊠he tried okay? but he ended up embarrassed and all red⊠he really wants to be able to do that but heâs lacking confidence.
when that happens PLEASEE reassure him that is okay to not know how to express his feelings.
he loves receiving hugs and cheek kisses from you.
He likes looking at you while youâre getting ready, especially if youâre putting on makeup. He loves watching your focused face and asks you what youâre doing, itâs his way to show you that heâs interested in everything you do!
Heâs not a big fan of PDA but doesnât mind it; he just does whatever you want to.
He smiles like an idiot whenever you hold his hand! He prefers hand-holding since it makes him think that you rely on him and feel safe around him. (Please hold his hand and go on long walks with him.)
Since he knows whatever youâre thinking about, he always provides you with everything you want or need. Want to watch this movie? Heâs buying the ticket. Craving a specific dessert? Heâs cooking it for you or suggesting a cooking date.
ACTS! OF!! SERVICE!!!! He does whatever you want, whenever and wherever, just to see you smile! He is, in fact, in love with your smiling face.
Heâd do anything you suggest. He even agreed once to let you dye his hair. If you have colored hair, heâd ask you to dye a strand of his hair the same as yours so you can match. . . đ„č
If youâre in college and have trouble studying, heâs going to help you in the best way possible. He might not even know what heâs doing, but please bear with him; heâs trying his best! Expect study dates where he tries to help you but ends up stressing over your exams.
About datesâŠ
Dates with Shin are AMAZING!! In everything he does, you can just feel his love for you and how deeply he cares about you.
One time, you two were walking together in a park and he spotted some pretty white flowers. He decided to put one behind your ear, but he did it so gently that you worried you were going to melt under his touch. And the way he was staring at you?? You died instantly.
Youâre never going to be alone because the whole Sakamoto family (mainly Lu and Heisuke) follow you around and take the cutest pictures of you two.
Shin is very embarrassed by it but you love his family and you understand that they just want to protect him.
Taro and Aoi love you and approve of your relationship with their âson.â They even invite you to go on family trips with the whole family, and you have to admit, those are the BEST family trips ever! Not only you spend time with your beloved clairvoyant boyfriend, but you also meet and have the chance to bond with his family.
You and Lu prank him a lot, and every time he scolds her and not you, because honestly, he canât be mad at you.
(Hana asked you to marry Shin and he became so red you thought he was going to explode)
Introduced you to Natsuki and Akira and honestly they couldnât believe that he got a partner as pretty as you! He was both flattered and offended by that commentâŠ
âoh uhm thank y- WHAT IS THAT SUPPOSED TO MEAN?â (Akira apologized for both her and Natsukiâs way of wording it)
Honestly I think a part of your relationship includes you taking care of him. Since you know what happened during his childhood, whenever possible, you take the opportunity to hug him and whisper sweet nothings in his ear. He loves and deeply cherishes those moments.
Overall 10/10 experience WOULD RECOMMEND!! nice guy with a nice family?? iâm in!
#sakamoto days#sakamoto days x reader#sakadays#sakadays x reader#shin asakura#shin asakura x reader#shin x reader#asakura shin#asakura shin x reader
990 notes
·
View notes
Note
good day, mister jester :) I see youre taking request. sicne you yourself are a jester, might i ask how the archons would deal with having their own jester? (making silly jokes, harmless pranks etc) how they acquire said jester is up to you!
how the ARCHONS would treat you as their JESTER!
requested by: wonderful sillay anon!!
parings: all archons & jester!reader
content warnings: none!! just silliness
comments: take this as romantic(NOT FOR NAHIDA) or platonic idc HEEHEE!! this is a splendid ask thank u my liege <3 probably ooc

VENTI:
youâre jesterâd by him after he found you on the street, while he was bumbling around drunk. thought you were funny, so he just tagged you along!!
and oooh he LOVES you!!! he writes so many songs for you to dance along to, happily singing and strumming his little lyre while you bust a move
if anything its the both of you that are the jesters⊠instead of you being in a âjester & godâ scenario, its more of a âjester & jesterâ thing. you tell eachother jokes, sing with eachother, etc! and after yall have fun, you lay down in the grass together and snooze :3
ZHONGLI:
youâre jesterâd by him after one of the millith recommend you to him, saying many good things about you and your antics!!! he meets you in person and it goes well!!
despite his strong and gentle demeanor, he will giggle and watch you happily. in fact, he actually HELPS you pull off pranks. ranging from replacing all of ventiâs sugar with salt, painting on the hull of beidouâs ship, or snatching masks from fatuus, youâre having fun alongside him sometimes!!!
he treats you super well, lavishing you with yummy treats and delicious tea. he makes a little room for you somewhere in the inn, and always makes sure youâre happy and well taken care of.
RAIDEN:
youâre jesterâd by her after miss sara almost puts you in jail. thankfully, your silly demeanor and joyous attitude captivated her. so you get to go free! as long as you can provide her some entertainment sometimes.
she actually doesnât have you entertain her that often, just kinda keeps you around like a cool rock. more often, youâll find yourself entertaining her guards and her loyal followers instead. which is still nice!
sheâll try her best to take care of you, but ultimately ends up just plopping you in the hands of the people she trusts. she isnât too fond of your pranks but she loves your performances, so youâre equipped with props and costumes :3
NAHIDA:
youâre jesterâd by her after you were grabbed by the scruff by a forest ranger, gently being ushered back into the city like a lost cat. which you might as well be! she saw you, you told her a few jokes and gave her some candy, and she got somewhat attached
she really likes your jokes!!! simple puns only, and the occasional riddle. a lot of the time, sheâd actually be telling YOU riddles! sadly theyâre very hard to figure out so good luck. you get to teach her about certain jokes but you have to explain the punchlines 50% of the time
life with her is very simple, she holds you as an equal (maybe even as a sibling figure?) unlike other archons like raiden or mavuika. you entertain her, and she entertains you! like a nice equal exchange of knowledge in the form of silly jokes.
FURINA:
youâre jesterâd after being caught by the guardes for breaking some obscure law, probably related to a prank you pulled. youâre dragged into court (which breaks your silly heartâŠ), furina sees you, and VERRYY dramatically calls for a halt. she runs away with you(and neuvillette on your tail).
she treats you like a secret, not in a weird way but in a.. whispers to you to go and check out the magazine selection and sends you off like her personal little scarab. itâs very obvious you two are hanging out because BOTH of you became 10x more dramatic, but she refuses everything.
your living situation is like roommates, despite her holding some power over you. neuvillette insisted that you get a separate apartment but you both complained enough to where you got to stay hanging out. youâre like best friends!! you eat sweets together, hang out, etc. she even teaches you some of her super secret acting techniques!!!
MAVUIKA:
youâre jesterâd after you become hopelessly lost in natlan, miserably jingling across the floor, and winding up in a family of saurians. she finds you all sad and weeping and ue ue ue, and takes you in like a little baby birdie.
actually, you donât do much entertaining with her! when you do, itâs usually her trying to train you to become strong. thankfully your little kicks and sad punches donât do much to her. so to cheer you up, she lets you tell her riddles and stories and jokes. turns out she is a SUCKER for puns.
you get to hang out in natlan wherever you want, like tossing a bird in the air and letting it fly away for a bit. your best nap spot is in a very cramped little cave, all cozied up with one blanket to make the edges less sharp. surprisingly itâs very cozy! you can even curl up above on the rocks like a lizard!!!!
TSARITSA:
youâre jesterâd by her after a few fatuus find you all sad and wet in the city, jingling about and being a general disturbance to the peace (as god intended). youâre dragged all the way to the palace, to get judged. youâre not put in as a harbinger but you get to be a fool one way or another!
speaking of harbingers, they either love you or hate you. the tsaritsa will always ensure your safety from the weirdness of dottore and the edginess of signora, but you canât help but be a little upset by them. sheâll wipe your tears and allow you to dance around the palace to help you feel better :3
you get free reign over the palace whether the harbingers like it or not. curled up on lab tables, hunched under chairs, maybe stealing a fatuu gruntâs bed, etc. and they donât get to say anything bad about you because youâre the tsaritsaâs special little jester! pierro is still upset that you stole his cool nickname though
eat up my liege⊠leave no crumbs either. i just swept the floor
#YAY FIRST ASK! thank u anon#mwah mwah#genshin impact#genshin#genshin x reader#x reader#archons#venti#venti x reader#zhongli#zhongli x reader#raiden#raiden x reader#nahida#mavuika#mavuika x reader#tsaritsa#tsaritsa x reader#jester#fool#writing blog#writing#headcanons#im desperaye to get reach shhh </3#requests open
323 notes
·
View notes
Note
hellooo! i haven't requested anything for a WHILE but your latest work of m!reader x vander was so cute so i got a little idea.
LET'S JUST IMAGINE (đđ) that vander survives, but instead of him, the one who died THAT day was his fiancĂ©/husband. so now, he's not warwick but his husband is.
u see the reunion inside the mines, how would it be if his husband on warwick form recognized him? and how would he react to seeing him like that?
if u liked the request let me know bc i may have a little idea of a continuation for this one where everyone gets a happy ending lol đ«Ą
đđđđ. â (Vander X Warwick!Male Reader).
Note: Hi! That's actually such an interesting switch! Ended up very angsty and took a while to finish since end of year has everyone very busy. It was fun to write, thank you for the request, I hope you enjoy it.
Summary: Vander's husband was accidentally a victim during Silco's revenge plot. After many years, he returns to his homeâVanderâbut with drastic changes.
Warnings: Spoilers, don't read unless you've watched Arcane. Potentially triggering content that briefly mentions a fight and injuries.
Key: (Y/n) â Your name. | (H/c) â Your hair colour. | (E/c) â Your eye colour.
Red obscures (Y/n)âs vision, all objects but a mere shadowy silhouette in a maroon background. The sounds are distorted, muffled as if the creature was submerged inside a liquid even as the putrid air scorches his lungs and burns inside him along with his blood. Faint memories fade in and out of his consciousness like a detuned radio switching between frequencies, the humming of the static and the violent flashes of noise dulled out by the words that cut through it.
Powderâs eyes adjust the settings, keeping the radio tuned at the right frequency and letting the memories be coherent and loud for longer. The red fades, white seeps through, and suddenly he sees the little girl before him, shining like the sun. He opens his mouth, strange even to himself, and lets the sound out of his throat. âPowder.â
A rough, calloused hand presses against his shoulder in a gentle gesture of affection as he watches the children run around chasing each other. Tousled blue hair comes in his direction, Powderâs eyes closed as the girl giggles and holds out another one of her recent contraptions in her tiny hands. Her eyes were open, and the sweet look on them brought a pleasant sensation of joy. The hand squeezes his shoulder. Vander. Vander. The bar. The mines. Vander.
Claws scratch against dirt and filthy pavements, and the creature desperately propels itself forward as the memories fade away. His feet ache, the static gradually returns, and his vision fogs. There's nothing left once he reaches the mines. Nothingness gnaws at his mind, and the smell of soot and ash throws him back into the liquid; the mines brighten up with his movements, but he is blind to the light. (Y/n) stays quiet, no longer searching, just waiting. What he's waiting for, he doesn't know.
Something does come eventually, metallic footsteps and mumbling voices that send a sharp ringing to his head and urge him to attack whatever has come to threaten him. His gut screams at him to move, and he can't hold out any longer; as the sounds grow louder, he gives in to instinct.
Blood rushes to his head, a mechanical click of weapons echoes in the mines, and he feels a surge of vicious adrenaline pumping along with the mixture of chemicals inside him. Dark silhouettes appear, bracing themselves for confrontation and raising their guards; one stands out, a hulking figureâcompared to the othersâthat stands in front with its fists raised.
(Y/n) lunges at it, sharp teeth ready to maul the shadow and tear it into pieces. He knocks them to the ground, claw grazing their left cheek as he slams his hand on the side of their head. The black blur stays still, eyes boring into the creature's mismatched ones.
Greyish blue overwhelms the crimson and the darkness, and as the manâs mouth opens, his voice pierces its way directly into his ears. â(Y/n)... What happened to you?â
Itâs unlike Powderâs gentle tuning; his is a harsh decentering force that rips him away from his current reality and thrusts him into the past and the present at the same time. He shudders, mind spinning endlessly with recognition and horror freezing him at where he stands and paralysing his every limb to complete inertia. If he once was submerged in liquid, this liquid has now been turned solid and started to form cracks at its surface.
Five seconds in stillness pass before the creature staggers away, its body swaying side to side as it loses its balance. The pressure in his brain grows stronger as the static melts away and leaves clarity in its wake; the memories surge in a blaring stream, and this time, they stay. (Y/n) blinks twiceâvision finally clearing upâand looks at the man in front of him.
âVander.â
The lights flickered with each step he took and white spots danced in his vision. (Y/n)âs head throbbed, his heart ached, and suddenly it wasnât just dirt entering his lungs but burning ash as Vander gawked at himâeyes wide, desperate. He stands amid fire; wreckage falls all around him, threatening to crush him and end his life at any moment. His body is much too heavy to move, and a strange fluorescent liquid leaks out of his eyes and ears.
After a long beat of silence, he felt something wet staining his hand, which he now realised had been firmly pressed against the centre of his stomach. He falls. His head hits the floor first, sending a muffled thud from his ear to his eye. The fire crackles around him, cradling him to sleep as the screams vanish bit by bit and the image of Vander dissolves like dust in the wind.
A contrite silence lingers in the mines; his senses return at the same time his memories settle in. No more switching between frequencies, but stuck in the appropriate frequency at which he can remember what was heard and still hear what is being said. Everything breaks completely, and he falls to his knees.
â(Y/n).â Vander calls, worriedly rushing to hold his lover's disfigured face in his hands. There's a rush of tenderness and longing coursing through his veins; he is overwhelmed both by the joy of reunion and by the grief of what was lost.
Darkness shrouds them like a warm cloak, hiding the two men from sight. (Y/n) crawls closer to the other man, his broad figure curling on itself to be as small as possible and claws meekly laying stagnant at the sides of the men he loves. The two hold each other, hearing the sound of their hearts beating. They are alive, and for once in a long time, they are home.
#male reader#malereader#reader#x male reader#x reader#xmalereader#arcane x male reader#arcane#arcane x reader#warwick male reader#warwick reader#vander x male reader#vander x reader
203 notes
·
View notes